github.com/aloncn/graphics-go@v0.0.1/src/compress/testdata/Mark.Twain-Tom.Sawyer.txt (about) 1 Produced by David Widger. The previous edition was updated by Jose 2 Menendez. 3 4 5 6 7 8 THE ADVENTURES OF TOM SAWYER 9 BY 10 MARK TWAIN 11 (Samuel Langhorne Clemens) 12 13 14 15 16 P R E F A C E 17 18 MOST of the adventures recorded in this book really occurred; one or 19 two were experiences of my own, the rest those of boys who were 20 schoolmates of mine. Huck Finn is drawn from life; Tom Sawyer also, but 21 not from an individual--he is a combination of the characteristics of 22 three boys whom I knew, and therefore belongs to the composite order of 23 architecture. 24 25 The odd superstitions touched upon were all prevalent among children 26 and slaves in the West at the period of this story--that is to say, 27 thirty or forty years ago. 28 29 Although my book is intended mainly for the entertainment of boys and 30 girls, I hope it will not be shunned by men and women on that account, 31 for part of my plan has been to try to pleasantly remind adults of what 32 they once were themselves, and of how they felt and thought and talked, 33 and what queer enterprises they sometimes engaged in. 34 35 THE AUTHOR. 36 37 HARTFORD, 1876. 38 39 40 41 T O M S A W Y E R 42 43 44 45 CHAPTER I 46 47 "TOM!" 48 49 No answer. 50 51 "TOM!" 52 53 No answer. 54 55 "What's gone with that boy, I wonder? You TOM!" 56 57 No answer. 58 59 The old lady pulled her spectacles down and looked over them about the 60 room; then she put them up and looked out under them. She seldom or 61 never looked THROUGH them for so small a thing as a boy; they were her 62 state pair, the pride of her heart, and were built for "style," not 63 service--she could have seen through a pair of stove-lids just as well. 64 She looked perplexed for a moment, and then said, not fiercely, but 65 still loud enough for the furniture to hear: 66 67 "Well, I lay if I get hold of you I'll--" 68 69 She did not finish, for by this time she was bending down and punching 70 under the bed with the broom, and so she needed breath to punctuate the 71 punches with. She resurrected nothing but the cat. 72 73 "I never did see the beat of that boy!" 74 75 She went to the open door and stood in it and looked out among the 76 tomato vines and "jimpson" weeds that constituted the garden. No Tom. 77 So she lifted up her voice at an angle calculated for distance and 78 shouted: 79 80 "Y-o-u-u TOM!" 81 82 There was a slight noise behind her and she turned just in time to 83 seize a small boy by the slack of his roundabout and arrest his flight. 84 85 "There! I might 'a' thought of that closet. What you been doing in 86 there?" 87 88 "Nothing." 89 90 "Nothing! Look at your hands. And look at your mouth. What IS that 91 truck?" 92 93 "I don't know, aunt." 94 95 "Well, I know. It's jam--that's what it is. Forty times I've said if 96 you didn't let that jam alone I'd skin you. Hand me that switch." 97 98 The switch hovered in the air--the peril was desperate-- 99 100 "My! Look behind you, aunt!" 101 102 The old lady whirled round, and snatched her skirts out of danger. The 103 lad fled on the instant, scrambled up the high board-fence, and 104 disappeared over it. 105 106 His aunt Polly stood surprised a moment, and then broke into a gentle 107 laugh. 108 109 "Hang the boy, can't I never learn anything? Ain't he played me tricks 110 enough like that for me to be looking out for him by this time? But old 111 fools is the biggest fools there is. Can't learn an old dog new tricks, 112 as the saying is. But my goodness, he never plays them alike, two days, 113 and how is a body to know what's coming? He 'pears to know just how 114 long he can torment me before I get my dander up, and he knows if he 115 can make out to put me off for a minute or make me laugh, it's all down 116 again and I can't hit him a lick. I ain't doing my duty by that boy, 117 and that's the Lord's truth, goodness knows. Spare the rod and spile 118 the child, as the Good Book says. I'm a laying up sin and suffering for 119 us both, I know. He's full of the Old Scratch, but laws-a-me! he's my 120 own dead sister's boy, poor thing, and I ain't got the heart to lash 121 him, somehow. Every time I let him off, my conscience does hurt me so, 122 and every time I hit him my old heart most breaks. Well-a-well, man 123 that is born of woman is of few days and full of trouble, as the 124 Scripture says, and I reckon it's so. He'll play hookey this evening, * 125 and [* Southwestern for "afternoon"] I'll just be obleeged to make him 126 work, to-morrow, to punish him. It's mighty hard to make him work 127 Saturdays, when all the boys is having holiday, but he hates work more 128 than he hates anything else, and I've GOT to do some of my duty by him, 129 or I'll be the ruination of the child." 130 131 Tom did play hookey, and he had a very good time. He got back home 132 barely in season to help Jim, the small colored boy, saw next-day's 133 wood and split the kindlings before supper--at least he was there in 134 time to tell his adventures to Jim while Jim did three-fourths of the 135 work. Tom's younger brother (or rather half-brother) Sid was already 136 through with his part of the work (picking up chips), for he was a 137 quiet boy, and had no adventurous, troublesome ways. 138 139 While Tom was eating his supper, and stealing sugar as opportunity 140 offered, Aunt Polly asked him questions that were full of guile, and 141 very deep--for she wanted to trap him into damaging revealments. Like 142 many other simple-hearted souls, it was her pet vanity to believe she 143 was endowed with a talent for dark and mysterious diplomacy, and she 144 loved to contemplate her most transparent devices as marvels of low 145 cunning. Said she: 146 147 "Tom, it was middling warm in school, warn't it?" 148 149 "Yes'm." 150 151 "Powerful warm, warn't it?" 152 153 "Yes'm." 154 155 "Didn't you want to go in a-swimming, Tom?" 156 157 A bit of a scare shot through Tom--a touch of uncomfortable suspicion. 158 He searched Aunt Polly's face, but it told him nothing. So he said: 159 160 "No'm--well, not very much." 161 162 The old lady reached out her hand and felt Tom's shirt, and said: 163 164 "But you ain't too warm now, though." And it flattered her to reflect 165 that she had discovered that the shirt was dry without anybody knowing 166 that that was what she had in her mind. But in spite of her, Tom knew 167 where the wind lay, now. So he forestalled what might be the next move: 168 169 "Some of us pumped on our heads--mine's damp yet. See?" 170 171 Aunt Polly was vexed to think she had overlooked that bit of 172 circumstantial evidence, and missed a trick. Then she had a new 173 inspiration: 174 175 "Tom, you didn't have to undo your shirt collar where I sewed it, to 176 pump on your head, did you? Unbutton your jacket!" 177 178 The trouble vanished out of Tom's face. He opened his jacket. His 179 shirt collar was securely sewed. 180 181 "Bother! Well, go 'long with you. I'd made sure you'd played hookey 182 and been a-swimming. But I forgive ye, Tom. I reckon you're a kind of a 183 singed cat, as the saying is--better'n you look. THIS time." 184 185 She was half sorry her sagacity had miscarried, and half glad that Tom 186 had stumbled into obedient conduct for once. 187 188 But Sidney said: 189 190 "Well, now, if I didn't think you sewed his collar with white thread, 191 but it's black." 192 193 "Why, I did sew it with white! Tom!" 194 195 But Tom did not wait for the rest. As he went out at the door he said: 196 197 "Siddy, I'll lick you for that." 198 199 In a safe place Tom examined two large needles which were thrust into 200 the lapels of his jacket, and had thread bound about them--one needle 201 carried white thread and the other black. He said: 202 203 "She'd never noticed if it hadn't been for Sid. Confound it! sometimes 204 she sews it with white, and sometimes she sews it with black. I wish to 205 geeminy she'd stick to one or t'other--I can't keep the run of 'em. But 206 I bet you I'll lam Sid for that. I'll learn him!" 207 208 He was not the Model Boy of the village. He knew the model boy very 209 well though--and loathed him. 210 211 Within two minutes, or even less, he had forgotten all his troubles. 212 Not because his troubles were one whit less heavy and bitter to him 213 than a man's are to a man, but because a new and powerful interest bore 214 them down and drove them out of his mind for the time--just as men's 215 misfortunes are forgotten in the excitement of new enterprises. This 216 new interest was a valued novelty in whistling, which he had just 217 acquired from a negro, and he was suffering to practise it undisturbed. 218 It consisted in a peculiar bird-like turn, a sort of liquid warble, 219 produced by touching the tongue to the roof of the mouth at short 220 intervals in the midst of the music--the reader probably remembers how 221 to do it, if he has ever been a boy. Diligence and attention soon gave 222 him the knack of it, and he strode down the street with his mouth full 223 of harmony and his soul full of gratitude. He felt much as an 224 astronomer feels who has discovered a new planet--no doubt, as far as 225 strong, deep, unalloyed pleasure is concerned, the advantage was with 226 the boy, not the astronomer. 227 228 The summer evenings were long. It was not dark, yet. Presently Tom 229 checked his whistle. A stranger was before him--a boy a shade larger 230 than himself. A new-comer of any age or either sex was an impressive 231 curiosity in the poor little shabby village of St. Petersburg. This boy 232 was well dressed, too--well dressed on a week-day. This was simply 233 astounding. His cap was a dainty thing, his close-buttoned blue cloth 234 roundabout was new and natty, and so were his pantaloons. He had shoes 235 on--and it was only Friday. He even wore a necktie, a bright bit of 236 ribbon. He had a citified air about him that ate into Tom's vitals. The 237 more Tom stared at the splendid marvel, the higher he turned up his 238 nose at his finery and the shabbier and shabbier his own outfit seemed 239 to him to grow. Neither boy spoke. If one moved, the other moved--but 240 only sidewise, in a circle; they kept face to face and eye to eye all 241 the time. Finally Tom said: 242 243 "I can lick you!" 244 245 "I'd like to see you try it." 246 247 "Well, I can do it." 248 249 "No you can't, either." 250 251 "Yes I can." 252 253 "No you can't." 254 255 "I can." 256 257 "You can't." 258 259 "Can!" 260 261 "Can't!" 262 263 An uncomfortable pause. Then Tom said: 264 265 "What's your name?" 266 267 "'Tisn't any of your business, maybe." 268 269 "Well I 'low I'll MAKE it my business." 270 271 "Well why don't you?" 272 273 "If you say much, I will." 274 275 "Much--much--MUCH. There now." 276 277 "Oh, you think you're mighty smart, DON'T you? I could lick you with 278 one hand tied behind me, if I wanted to." 279 280 "Well why don't you DO it? You SAY you can do it." 281 282 "Well I WILL, if you fool with me." 283 284 "Oh yes--I've seen whole families in the same fix." 285 286 "Smarty! You think you're SOME, now, DON'T you? Oh, what a hat!" 287 288 "You can lump that hat if you don't like it. I dare you to knock it 289 off--and anybody that'll take a dare will suck eggs." 290 291 "You're a liar!" 292 293 "You're another." 294 295 "You're a fighting liar and dasn't take it up." 296 297 "Aw--take a walk!" 298 299 "Say--if you give me much more of your sass I'll take and bounce a 300 rock off'n your head." 301 302 "Oh, of COURSE you will." 303 304 "Well I WILL." 305 306 "Well why don't you DO it then? What do you keep SAYING you will for? 307 Why don't you DO it? It's because you're afraid." 308 309 "I AIN'T afraid." 310 311 "You are." 312 313 "I ain't." 314 315 "You are." 316 317 Another pause, and more eying and sidling around each other. Presently 318 they were shoulder to shoulder. Tom said: 319 320 "Get away from here!" 321 322 "Go away yourself!" 323 324 "I won't." 325 326 "I won't either." 327 328 So they stood, each with a foot placed at an angle as a brace, and 329 both shoving with might and main, and glowering at each other with 330 hate. But neither could get an advantage. After struggling till both 331 were hot and flushed, each relaxed his strain with watchful caution, 332 and Tom said: 333 334 "You're a coward and a pup. I'll tell my big brother on you, and he 335 can thrash you with his little finger, and I'll make him do it, too." 336 337 "What do I care for your big brother? I've got a brother that's bigger 338 than he is--and what's more, he can throw him over that fence, too." 339 [Both brothers were imaginary.] 340 341 "That's a lie." 342 343 "YOUR saying so don't make it so." 344 345 Tom drew a line in the dust with his big toe, and said: 346 347 "I dare you to step over that, and I'll lick you till you can't stand 348 up. Anybody that'll take a dare will steal sheep." 349 350 The new boy stepped over promptly, and said: 351 352 "Now you said you'd do it, now let's see you do it." 353 354 "Don't you crowd me now; you better look out." 355 356 "Well, you SAID you'd do it--why don't you do it?" 357 358 "By jingo! for two cents I WILL do it." 359 360 The new boy took two broad coppers out of his pocket and held them out 361 with derision. Tom struck them to the ground. In an instant both boys 362 were rolling and tumbling in the dirt, gripped together like cats; and 363 for the space of a minute they tugged and tore at each other's hair and 364 clothes, punched and scratched each other's nose, and covered 365 themselves with dust and glory. Presently the confusion took form, and 366 through the fog of battle Tom appeared, seated astride the new boy, and 367 pounding him with his fists. "Holler 'nuff!" said he. 368 369 The boy only struggled to free himself. He was crying--mainly from rage. 370 371 "Holler 'nuff!"--and the pounding went on. 372 373 At last the stranger got out a smothered "'Nuff!" and Tom let him up 374 and said: 375 376 "Now that'll learn you. Better look out who you're fooling with next 377 time." 378 379 The new boy went off brushing the dust from his clothes, sobbing, 380 snuffling, and occasionally looking back and shaking his head and 381 threatening what he would do to Tom the "next time he caught him out." 382 To which Tom responded with jeers, and started off in high feather, and 383 as soon as his back was turned the new boy snatched up a stone, threw 384 it and hit him between the shoulders and then turned tail and ran like 385 an antelope. Tom chased the traitor home, and thus found out where he 386 lived. He then held a position at the gate for some time, daring the 387 enemy to come outside, but the enemy only made faces at him through the 388 window and declined. At last the enemy's mother appeared, and called 389 Tom a bad, vicious, vulgar child, and ordered him away. So he went 390 away; but he said he "'lowed" to "lay" for that boy. 391 392 He got home pretty late that night, and when he climbed cautiously in 393 at the window, he uncovered an ambuscade, in the person of his aunt; 394 and when she saw the state his clothes were in her resolution to turn 395 his Saturday holiday into captivity at hard labor became adamantine in 396 its firmness. 397 398 399 400 CHAPTER II 401 402 SATURDAY morning was come, and all the summer world was bright and 403 fresh, and brimming with life. There was a song in every heart; and if 404 the heart was young the music issued at the lips. There was cheer in 405 every face and a spring in every step. The locust-trees were in bloom 406 and the fragrance of the blossoms filled the air. Cardiff Hill, beyond 407 the village and above it, was green with vegetation and it lay just far 408 enough away to seem a Delectable Land, dreamy, reposeful, and inviting. 409 410 Tom appeared on the sidewalk with a bucket of whitewash and a 411 long-handled brush. He surveyed the fence, and all gladness left him and 412 a deep melancholy settled down upon his spirit. Thirty yards of board 413 fence nine feet high. Life to him seemed hollow, and existence but a 414 burden. Sighing, he dipped his brush and passed it along the topmost 415 plank; repeated the operation; did it again; compared the insignificant 416 whitewashed streak with the far-reaching continent of unwhitewashed 417 fence, and sat down on a tree-box discouraged. Jim came skipping out at 418 the gate with a tin pail, and singing Buffalo Gals. Bringing water from 419 the town pump had always been hateful work in Tom's eyes, before, but 420 now it did not strike him so. He remembered that there was company at 421 the pump. White, mulatto, and negro boys and girls were always there 422 waiting their turns, resting, trading playthings, quarrelling, 423 fighting, skylarking. And he remembered that although the pump was only 424 a hundred and fifty yards off, Jim never got back with a bucket of 425 water under an hour--and even then somebody generally had to go after 426 him. Tom said: 427 428 "Say, Jim, I'll fetch the water if you'll whitewash some." 429 430 Jim shook his head and said: 431 432 "Can't, Mars Tom. Ole missis, she tole me I got to go an' git dis 433 water an' not stop foolin' roun' wid anybody. She say she spec' Mars 434 Tom gwine to ax me to whitewash, an' so she tole me go 'long an' 'tend 435 to my own business--she 'lowed SHE'D 'tend to de whitewashin'." 436 437 "Oh, never you mind what she said, Jim. That's the way she always 438 talks. Gimme the bucket--I won't be gone only a a minute. SHE won't 439 ever know." 440 441 "Oh, I dasn't, Mars Tom. Ole missis she'd take an' tar de head off'n 442 me. 'Deed she would." 443 444 "SHE! She never licks anybody--whacks 'em over the head with her 445 thimble--and who cares for that, I'd like to know. She talks awful, but 446 talk don't hurt--anyways it don't if she don't cry. Jim, I'll give you 447 a marvel. I'll give you a white alley!" 448 449 Jim began to waver. 450 451 "White alley, Jim! And it's a bully taw." 452 453 "My! Dat's a mighty gay marvel, I tell you! But Mars Tom I's powerful 454 'fraid ole missis--" 455 456 "And besides, if you will I'll show you my sore toe." 457 458 Jim was only human--this attraction was too much for him. He put down 459 his pail, took the white alley, and bent over the toe with absorbing 460 interest while the bandage was being unwound. In another moment he was 461 flying down the street with his pail and a tingling rear, Tom was 462 whitewashing with vigor, and Aunt Polly was retiring from the field 463 with a slipper in her hand and triumph in her eye. 464 465 But Tom's energy did not last. He began to think of the fun he had 466 planned for this day, and his sorrows multiplied. Soon the free boys 467 would come tripping along on all sorts of delicious expeditions, and 468 they would make a world of fun of him for having to work--the very 469 thought of it burnt him like fire. He got out his worldly wealth and 470 examined it--bits of toys, marbles, and trash; enough to buy an 471 exchange of WORK, maybe, but not half enough to buy so much as half an 472 hour of pure freedom. So he returned his straitened means to his 473 pocket, and gave up the idea of trying to buy the boys. At this dark 474 and hopeless moment an inspiration burst upon him! Nothing less than a 475 great, magnificent inspiration. 476 477 He took up his brush and went tranquilly to work. Ben Rogers hove in 478 sight presently--the very boy, of all boys, whose ridicule he had been 479 dreading. Ben's gait was the hop-skip-and-jump--proof enough that his 480 heart was light and his anticipations high. He was eating an apple, and 481 giving a long, melodious whoop, at intervals, followed by a deep-toned 482 ding-dong-dong, ding-dong-dong, for he was personating a steamboat. As 483 he drew near, he slackened speed, took the middle of the street, leaned 484 far over to starboard and rounded to ponderously and with laborious 485 pomp and circumstance--for he was personating the Big Missouri, and 486 considered himself to be drawing nine feet of water. He was boat and 487 captain and engine-bells combined, so he had to imagine himself 488 standing on his own hurricane-deck giving the orders and executing them: 489 490 "Stop her, sir! Ting-a-ling-ling!" The headway ran almost out, and he 491 drew up slowly toward the sidewalk. 492 493 "Ship up to back! Ting-a-ling-ling!" His arms straightened and 494 stiffened down his sides. 495 496 "Set her back on the stabboard! Ting-a-ling-ling! Chow! ch-chow-wow! 497 Chow!" His right hand, meantime, describing stately circles--for it was 498 representing a forty-foot wheel. 499 500 "Let her go back on the labboard! Ting-a-lingling! Chow-ch-chow-chow!" 501 The left hand began to describe circles. 502 503 "Stop the stabboard! Ting-a-ling-ling! Stop the labboard! Come ahead 504 on the stabboard! Stop her! Let your outside turn over slow! 505 Ting-a-ling-ling! Chow-ow-ow! Get out that head-line! LIVELY now! 506 Come--out with your spring-line--what're you about there! Take a turn 507 round that stump with the bight of it! Stand by that stage, now--let her 508 go! Done with the engines, sir! Ting-a-ling-ling! SH'T! S'H'T! SH'T!" 509 (trying the gauge-cocks). 510 511 Tom went on whitewashing--paid no attention to the steamboat. Ben 512 stared a moment and then said: "Hi-YI! YOU'RE up a stump, ain't you!" 513 514 No answer. Tom surveyed his last touch with the eye of an artist, then 515 he gave his brush another gentle sweep and surveyed the result, as 516 before. Ben ranged up alongside of him. Tom's mouth watered for the 517 apple, but he stuck to his work. Ben said: 518 519 "Hello, old chap, you got to work, hey?" 520 521 Tom wheeled suddenly and said: 522 523 "Why, it's you, Ben! I warn't noticing." 524 525 "Say--I'm going in a-swimming, I am. Don't you wish you could? But of 526 course you'd druther WORK--wouldn't you? Course you would!" 527 528 Tom contemplated the boy a bit, and said: 529 530 "What do you call work?" 531 532 "Why, ain't THAT work?" 533 534 Tom resumed his whitewashing, and answered carelessly: 535 536 "Well, maybe it is, and maybe it ain't. All I know, is, it suits Tom 537 Sawyer." 538 539 "Oh come, now, you don't mean to let on that you LIKE it?" 540 541 The brush continued to move. 542 543 "Like it? Well, I don't see why I oughtn't to like it. Does a boy get 544 a chance to whitewash a fence every day?" 545 546 That put the thing in a new light. Ben stopped nibbling his apple. Tom 547 swept his brush daintily back and forth--stepped back to note the 548 effect--added a touch here and there--criticised the effect again--Ben 549 watching every move and getting more and more interested, more and more 550 absorbed. Presently he said: 551 552 "Say, Tom, let ME whitewash a little." 553 554 Tom considered, was about to consent; but he altered his mind: 555 556 "No--no--I reckon it wouldn't hardly do, Ben. You see, Aunt Polly's 557 awful particular about this fence--right here on the street, you know 558 --but if it was the back fence I wouldn't mind and SHE wouldn't. Yes, 559 she's awful particular about this fence; it's got to be done very 560 careful; I reckon there ain't one boy in a thousand, maybe two 561 thousand, that can do it the way it's got to be done." 562 563 "No--is that so? Oh come, now--lemme just try. Only just a little--I'd 564 let YOU, if you was me, Tom." 565 566 "Ben, I'd like to, honest injun; but Aunt Polly--well, Jim wanted to 567 do it, but she wouldn't let him; Sid wanted to do it, and she wouldn't 568 let Sid. Now don't you see how I'm fixed? If you was to tackle this 569 fence and anything was to happen to it--" 570 571 "Oh, shucks, I'll be just as careful. Now lemme try. Say--I'll give 572 you the core of my apple." 573 574 "Well, here--No, Ben, now don't. I'm afeard--" 575 576 "I'll give you ALL of it!" 577 578 Tom gave up the brush with reluctance in his face, but alacrity in his 579 heart. And while the late steamer Big Missouri worked and sweated in 580 the sun, the retired artist sat on a barrel in the shade close by, 581 dangled his legs, munched his apple, and planned the slaughter of more 582 innocents. There was no lack of material; boys happened along every 583 little while; they came to jeer, but remained to whitewash. By the time 584 Ben was fagged out, Tom had traded the next chance to Billy Fisher for 585 a kite, in good repair; and when he played out, Johnny Miller bought in 586 for a dead rat and a string to swing it with--and so on, and so on, 587 hour after hour. And when the middle of the afternoon came, from being 588 a poor poverty-stricken boy in the morning, Tom was literally rolling 589 in wealth. He had besides the things before mentioned, twelve marbles, 590 part of a jews-harp, a piece of blue bottle-glass to look through, a 591 spool cannon, a key that wouldn't unlock anything, a fragment of chalk, 592 a glass stopper of a decanter, a tin soldier, a couple of tadpoles, six 593 fire-crackers, a kitten with only one eye, a brass doorknob, a 594 dog-collar--but no dog--the handle of a knife, four pieces of 595 orange-peel, and a dilapidated old window sash. 596 597 He had had a nice, good, idle time all the while--plenty of company 598 --and the fence had three coats of whitewash on it! If he hadn't run out 599 of whitewash he would have bankrupted every boy in the village. 600 601 Tom said to himself that it was not such a hollow world, after all. He 602 had discovered a great law of human action, without knowing it--namely, 603 that in order to make a man or a boy covet a thing, it is only 604 necessary to make the thing difficult to attain. If he had been a great 605 and wise philosopher, like the writer of this book, he would now have 606 comprehended that Work consists of whatever a body is OBLIGED to do, 607 and that Play consists of whatever a body is not obliged to do. And 608 this would help him to understand why constructing artificial flowers 609 or performing on a tread-mill is work, while rolling ten-pins or 610 climbing Mont Blanc is only amusement. There are wealthy gentlemen in 611 England who drive four-horse passenger-coaches twenty or thirty miles 612 on a daily line, in the summer, because the privilege costs them 613 considerable money; but if they were offered wages for the service, 614 that would turn it into work and then they would resign. 615 616 The boy mused awhile over the substantial change which had taken place 617 in his worldly circumstances, and then wended toward headquarters to 618 report. 619 620 621 622 CHAPTER III 623 624 TOM presented himself before Aunt Polly, who was sitting by an open 625 window in a pleasant rearward apartment, which was bedroom, 626 breakfast-room, dining-room, and library, combined. The balmy summer 627 air, the restful quiet, the odor of the flowers, and the drowsing murmur 628 of the bees had had their effect, and she was nodding over her knitting 629 --for she had no company but the cat, and it was asleep in her lap. Her 630 spectacles were propped up on her gray head for safety. She had thought 631 that of course Tom had deserted long ago, and she wondered at seeing him 632 place himself in her power again in this intrepid way. He said: "Mayn't 633 I go and play now, aunt?" 634 635 "What, a'ready? How much have you done?" 636 637 "It's all done, aunt." 638 639 "Tom, don't lie to me--I can't bear it." 640 641 "I ain't, aunt; it IS all done." 642 643 Aunt Polly placed small trust in such evidence. She went out to see 644 for herself; and she would have been content to find twenty per cent. 645 of Tom's statement true. When she found the entire fence whitewashed, 646 and not only whitewashed but elaborately coated and recoated, and even 647 a streak added to the ground, her astonishment was almost unspeakable. 648 She said: 649 650 "Well, I never! There's no getting round it, you can work when you're 651 a mind to, Tom." And then she diluted the compliment by adding, "But 652 it's powerful seldom you're a mind to, I'm bound to say. Well, go 'long 653 and play; but mind you get back some time in a week, or I'll tan you." 654 655 She was so overcome by the splendor of his achievement that she took 656 him into the closet and selected a choice apple and delivered it to 657 him, along with an improving lecture upon the added value and flavor a 658 treat took to itself when it came without sin through virtuous effort. 659 And while she closed with a happy Scriptural flourish, he "hooked" a 660 doughnut. 661 662 Then he skipped out, and saw Sid just starting up the outside stairway 663 that led to the back rooms on the second floor. Clods were handy and 664 the air was full of them in a twinkling. They raged around Sid like a 665 hail-storm; and before Aunt Polly could collect her surprised faculties 666 and sally to the rescue, six or seven clods had taken personal effect, 667 and Tom was over the fence and gone. There was a gate, but as a general 668 thing he was too crowded for time to make use of it. His soul was at 669 peace, now that he had settled with Sid for calling attention to his 670 black thread and getting him into trouble. 671 672 Tom skirted the block, and came round into a muddy alley that led by 673 the back of his aunt's cow-stable. He presently got safely beyond the 674 reach of capture and punishment, and hastened toward the public square 675 of the village, where two "military" companies of boys had met for 676 conflict, according to previous appointment. Tom was General of one of 677 these armies, Joe Harper (a bosom friend) General of the other. These 678 two great commanders did not condescend to fight in person--that being 679 better suited to the still smaller fry--but sat together on an eminence 680 and conducted the field operations by orders delivered through 681 aides-de-camp. Tom's army won a great victory, after a long and 682 hard-fought battle. Then the dead were counted, prisoners exchanged, 683 the terms of the next disagreement agreed upon, and the day for the 684 necessary battle appointed; after which the armies fell into line and 685 marched away, and Tom turned homeward alone. 686 687 As he was passing by the house where Jeff Thatcher lived, he saw a new 688 girl in the garden--a lovely little blue-eyed creature with yellow hair 689 plaited into two long-tails, white summer frock and embroidered 690 pantalettes. The fresh-crowned hero fell without firing a shot. A 691 certain Amy Lawrence vanished out of his heart and left not even a 692 memory of herself behind. He had thought he loved her to distraction; 693 he had regarded his passion as adoration; and behold it was only a poor 694 little evanescent partiality. He had been months winning her; she had 695 confessed hardly a week ago; he had been the happiest and the proudest 696 boy in the world only seven short days, and here in one instant of time 697 she had gone out of his heart like a casual stranger whose visit is 698 done. 699 700 He worshipped this new angel with furtive eye, till he saw that she 701 had discovered him; then he pretended he did not know she was present, 702 and began to "show off" in all sorts of absurd boyish ways, in order to 703 win her admiration. He kept up this grotesque foolishness for some 704 time; but by-and-by, while he was in the midst of some dangerous 705 gymnastic performances, he glanced aside and saw that the little girl 706 was wending her way toward the house. Tom came up to the fence and 707 leaned on it, grieving, and hoping she would tarry yet awhile longer. 708 She halted a moment on the steps and then moved toward the door. Tom 709 heaved a great sigh as she put her foot on the threshold. But his face 710 lit up, right away, for she tossed a pansy over the fence a moment 711 before she disappeared. 712 713 The boy ran around and stopped within a foot or two of the flower, and 714 then shaded his eyes with his hand and began to look down street as if 715 he had discovered something of interest going on in that direction. 716 Presently he picked up a straw and began trying to balance it on his 717 nose, with his head tilted far back; and as he moved from side to side, 718 in his efforts, he edged nearer and nearer toward the pansy; finally 719 his bare foot rested upon it, his pliant toes closed upon it, and he 720 hopped away with the treasure and disappeared round the corner. But 721 only for a minute--only while he could button the flower inside his 722 jacket, next his heart--or next his stomach, possibly, for he was not 723 much posted in anatomy, and not hypercritical, anyway. 724 725 He returned, now, and hung about the fence till nightfall, "showing 726 off," as before; but the girl never exhibited herself again, though Tom 727 comforted himself a little with the hope that she had been near some 728 window, meantime, and been aware of his attentions. Finally he strode 729 home reluctantly, with his poor head full of visions. 730 731 All through supper his spirits were so high that his aunt wondered 732 "what had got into the child." He took a good scolding about clodding 733 Sid, and did not seem to mind it in the least. He tried to steal sugar 734 under his aunt's very nose, and got his knuckles rapped for it. He said: 735 736 "Aunt, you don't whack Sid when he takes it." 737 738 "Well, Sid don't torment a body the way you do. You'd be always into 739 that sugar if I warn't watching you." 740 741 Presently she stepped into the kitchen, and Sid, happy in his 742 immunity, reached for the sugar-bowl--a sort of glorying over Tom which 743 was wellnigh unbearable. But Sid's fingers slipped and the bowl dropped 744 and broke. Tom was in ecstasies. In such ecstasies that he even 745 controlled his tongue and was silent. He said to himself that he would 746 not speak a word, even when his aunt came in, but would sit perfectly 747 still till she asked who did the mischief; and then he would tell, and 748 there would be nothing so good in the world as to see that pet model 749 "catch it." He was so brimful of exultation that he could hardly hold 750 himself when the old lady came back and stood above the wreck 751 discharging lightnings of wrath from over her spectacles. He said to 752 himself, "Now it's coming!" And the next instant he was sprawling on 753 the floor! The potent palm was uplifted to strike again when Tom cried 754 out: 755 756 "Hold on, now, what 'er you belting ME for?--Sid broke it!" 757 758 Aunt Polly paused, perplexed, and Tom looked for healing pity. But 759 when she got her tongue again, she only said: 760 761 "Umf! Well, you didn't get a lick amiss, I reckon. You been into some 762 other audacious mischief when I wasn't around, like enough." 763 764 Then her conscience reproached her, and she yearned to say something 765 kind and loving; but she judged that this would be construed into a 766 confession that she had been in the wrong, and discipline forbade that. 767 So she kept silence, and went about her affairs with a troubled heart. 768 Tom sulked in a corner and exalted his woes. He knew that in her heart 769 his aunt was on her knees to him, and he was morosely gratified by the 770 consciousness of it. He would hang out no signals, he would take notice 771 of none. He knew that a yearning glance fell upon him, now and then, 772 through a film of tears, but he refused recognition of it. He pictured 773 himself lying sick unto death and his aunt bending over him beseeching 774 one little forgiving word, but he would turn his face to the wall, and 775 die with that word unsaid. Ah, how would she feel then? And he pictured 776 himself brought home from the river, dead, with his curls all wet, and 777 his sore heart at rest. How she would throw herself upon him, and how 778 her tears would fall like rain, and her lips pray God to give her back 779 her boy and she would never, never abuse him any more! But he would lie 780 there cold and white and make no sign--a poor little sufferer, whose 781 griefs were at an end. He so worked upon his feelings with the pathos 782 of these dreams, that he had to keep swallowing, he was so like to 783 choke; and his eyes swam in a blur of water, which overflowed when he 784 winked, and ran down and trickled from the end of his nose. And such a 785 luxury to him was this petting of his sorrows, that he could not bear 786 to have any worldly cheeriness or any grating delight intrude upon it; 787 it was too sacred for such contact; and so, presently, when his cousin 788 Mary danced in, all alive with the joy of seeing home again after an 789 age-long visit of one week to the country, he got up and moved in 790 clouds and darkness out at one door as she brought song and sunshine in 791 at the other. 792 793 He wandered far from the accustomed haunts of boys, and sought 794 desolate places that were in harmony with his spirit. A log raft in the 795 river invited him, and he seated himself on its outer edge and 796 contemplated the dreary vastness of the stream, wishing, the while, 797 that he could only be drowned, all at once and unconsciously, without 798 undergoing the uncomfortable routine devised by nature. Then he thought 799 of his flower. He got it out, rumpled and wilted, and it mightily 800 increased his dismal felicity. He wondered if she would pity him if she 801 knew? Would she cry, and wish that she had a right to put her arms 802 around his neck and comfort him? Or would she turn coldly away like all 803 the hollow world? This picture brought such an agony of pleasurable 804 suffering that he worked it over and over again in his mind and set it 805 up in new and varied lights, till he wore it threadbare. At last he 806 rose up sighing and departed in the darkness. 807 808 About half-past nine or ten o'clock he came along the deserted street 809 to where the Adored Unknown lived; he paused a moment; no sound fell 810 upon his listening ear; a candle was casting a dull glow upon the 811 curtain of a second-story window. Was the sacred presence there? He 812 climbed the fence, threaded his stealthy way through the plants, till 813 he stood under that window; he looked up at it long, and with emotion; 814 then he laid him down on the ground under it, disposing himself upon 815 his back, with his hands clasped upon his breast and holding his poor 816 wilted flower. And thus he would die--out in the cold world, with no 817 shelter over his homeless head, no friendly hand to wipe the 818 death-damps from his brow, no loving face to bend pityingly over him 819 when the great agony came. And thus SHE would see him when she looked 820 out upon the glad morning, and oh! would she drop one little tear upon 821 his poor, lifeless form, would she heave one little sigh to see a bright 822 young life so rudely blighted, so untimely cut down? 823 824 The window went up, a maid-servant's discordant voice profaned the 825 holy calm, and a deluge of water drenched the prone martyr's remains! 826 827 The strangling hero sprang up with a relieving snort. There was a whiz 828 as of a missile in the air, mingled with the murmur of a curse, a sound 829 as of shivering glass followed, and a small, vague form went over the 830 fence and shot away in the gloom. 831 832 Not long after, as Tom, all undressed for bed, was surveying his 833 drenched garments by the light of a tallow dip, Sid woke up; but if he 834 had any dim idea of making any "references to allusions," he thought 835 better of it and held his peace, for there was danger in Tom's eye. 836 837 Tom turned in without the added vexation of prayers, and Sid made 838 mental note of the omission. 839 840 841 842 CHAPTER IV 843 844 THE sun rose upon a tranquil world, and beamed down upon the peaceful 845 village like a benediction. Breakfast over, Aunt Polly had family 846 worship: it began with a prayer built from the ground up of solid 847 courses of Scriptural quotations, welded together with a thin mortar of 848 originality; and from the summit of this she delivered a grim chapter 849 of the Mosaic Law, as from Sinai. 850 851 Then Tom girded up his loins, so to speak, and went to work to "get 852 his verses." Sid had learned his lesson days before. Tom bent all his 853 energies to the memorizing of five verses, and he chose part of the 854 Sermon on the Mount, because he could find no verses that were shorter. 855 At the end of half an hour Tom had a vague general idea of his lesson, 856 but no more, for his mind was traversing the whole field of human 857 thought, and his hands were busy with distracting recreations. Mary 858 took his book to hear him recite, and he tried to find his way through 859 the fog: 860 861 "Blessed are the--a--a--" 862 863 "Poor"-- 864 865 "Yes--poor; blessed are the poor--a--a--" 866 867 "In spirit--" 868 869 "In spirit; blessed are the poor in spirit, for they--they--" 870 871 "THEIRS--" 872 873 "For THEIRS. Blessed are the poor in spirit, for theirs is the kingdom 874 of heaven. Blessed are they that mourn, for they--they--" 875 876 "Sh--" 877 878 "For they--a--" 879 880 "S, H, A--" 881 882 "For they S, H--Oh, I don't know what it is!" 883 884 "SHALL!" 885 886 "Oh, SHALL! for they shall--for they shall--a--a--shall mourn--a--a-- 887 blessed are they that shall--they that--a--they that shall mourn, for 888 they shall--a--shall WHAT? Why don't you tell me, Mary?--what do you 889 want to be so mean for?" 890 891 "Oh, Tom, you poor thick-headed thing, I'm not teasing you. I wouldn't 892 do that. You must go and learn it again. Don't you be discouraged, Tom, 893 you'll manage it--and if you do, I'll give you something ever so nice. 894 There, now, that's a good boy." 895 896 "All right! What is it, Mary, tell me what it is." 897 898 "Never you mind, Tom. You know if I say it's nice, it is nice." 899 900 "You bet you that's so, Mary. All right, I'll tackle it again." 901 902 And he did "tackle it again"--and under the double pressure of 903 curiosity and prospective gain he did it with such spirit that he 904 accomplished a shining success. Mary gave him a brand-new "Barlow" 905 knife worth twelve and a half cents; and the convulsion of delight that 906 swept his system shook him to his foundations. True, the knife would 907 not cut anything, but it was a "sure-enough" Barlow, and there was 908 inconceivable grandeur in that--though where the Western boys ever got 909 the idea that such a weapon could possibly be counterfeited to its 910 injury is an imposing mystery and will always remain so, perhaps. Tom 911 contrived to scarify the cupboard with it, and was arranging to begin 912 on the bureau, when he was called off to dress for Sunday-school. 913 914 Mary gave him a tin basin of water and a piece of soap, and he went 915 outside the door and set the basin on a little bench there; then he 916 dipped the soap in the water and laid it down; turned up his sleeves; 917 poured out the water on the ground, gently, and then entered the 918 kitchen and began to wipe his face diligently on the towel behind the 919 door. But Mary removed the towel and said: 920 921 "Now ain't you ashamed, Tom. You mustn't be so bad. Water won't hurt 922 you." 923 924 Tom was a trifle disconcerted. The basin was refilled, and this time 925 he stood over it a little while, gathering resolution; took in a big 926 breath and began. When he entered the kitchen presently, with both eyes 927 shut and groping for the towel with his hands, an honorable testimony 928 of suds and water was dripping from his face. But when he emerged from 929 the towel, he was not yet satisfactory, for the clean territory stopped 930 short at his chin and his jaws, like a mask; below and beyond this line 931 there was a dark expanse of unirrigated soil that spread downward in 932 front and backward around his neck. Mary took him in hand, and when she 933 was done with him he was a man and a brother, without distinction of 934 color, and his saturated hair was neatly brushed, and its short curls 935 wrought into a dainty and symmetrical general effect. [He privately 936 smoothed out the curls, with labor and difficulty, and plastered his 937 hair close down to his head; for he held curls to be effeminate, and 938 his own filled his life with bitterness.] Then Mary got out a suit of 939 his clothing that had been used only on Sundays during two years--they 940 were simply called his "other clothes"--and so by that we know the 941 size of his wardrobe. The girl "put him to rights" after he had dressed 942 himself; she buttoned his neat roundabout up to his chin, turned his 943 vast shirt collar down over his shoulders, brushed him off and crowned 944 him with his speckled straw hat. He now looked exceedingly improved and 945 uncomfortable. He was fully as uncomfortable as he looked; for there 946 was a restraint about whole clothes and cleanliness that galled him. He 947 hoped that Mary would forget his shoes, but the hope was blighted; she 948 coated them thoroughly with tallow, as was the custom, and brought them 949 out. He lost his temper and said he was always being made to do 950 everything he didn't want to do. But Mary said, persuasively: 951 952 "Please, Tom--that's a good boy." 953 954 So he got into the shoes snarling. Mary was soon ready, and the three 955 children set out for Sunday-school--a place that Tom hated with his 956 whole heart; but Sid and Mary were fond of it. 957 958 Sabbath-school hours were from nine to half-past ten; and then church 959 service. Two of the children always remained for the sermon 960 voluntarily, and the other always remained too--for stronger reasons. 961 The church's high-backed, uncushioned pews would seat about three 962 hundred persons; the edifice was but a small, plain affair, with a sort 963 of pine board tree-box on top of it for a steeple. At the door Tom 964 dropped back a step and accosted a Sunday-dressed comrade: 965 966 "Say, Billy, got a yaller ticket?" 967 968 "Yes." 969 970 "What'll you take for her?" 971 972 "What'll you give?" 973 974 "Piece of lickrish and a fish-hook." 975 976 "Less see 'em." 977 978 Tom exhibited. They were satisfactory, and the property changed hands. 979 Then Tom traded a couple of white alleys for three red tickets, and 980 some small trifle or other for a couple of blue ones. He waylaid other 981 boys as they came, and went on buying tickets of various colors ten or 982 fifteen minutes longer. He entered the church, now, with a swarm of 983 clean and noisy boys and girls, proceeded to his seat and started a 984 quarrel with the first boy that came handy. The teacher, a grave, 985 elderly man, interfered; then turned his back a moment and Tom pulled a 986 boy's hair in the next bench, and was absorbed in his book when the boy 987 turned around; stuck a pin in another boy, presently, in order to hear 988 him say "Ouch!" and got a new reprimand from his teacher. Tom's whole 989 class were of a pattern--restless, noisy, and troublesome. When they 990 came to recite their lessons, not one of them knew his verses 991 perfectly, but had to be prompted all along. However, they worried 992 through, and each got his reward--in small blue tickets, each with a 993 passage of Scripture on it; each blue ticket was pay for two verses of 994 the recitation. Ten blue tickets equalled a red one, and could be 995 exchanged for it; ten red tickets equalled a yellow one; for ten yellow 996 tickets the superintendent gave a very plainly bound Bible (worth forty 997 cents in those easy times) to the pupil. How many of my readers would 998 have the industry and application to memorize two thousand verses, even 999 for a Dore Bible? And yet Mary had acquired two Bibles in this way--it 1000 was the patient work of two years--and a boy of German parentage had 1001 won four or five. He once recited three thousand verses without 1002 stopping; but the strain upon his mental faculties was too great, and 1003 he was little better than an idiot from that day forth--a grievous 1004 misfortune for the school, for on great occasions, before company, the 1005 superintendent (as Tom expressed it) had always made this boy come out 1006 and "spread himself." Only the older pupils managed to keep their 1007 tickets and stick to their tedious work long enough to get a Bible, and 1008 so the delivery of one of these prizes was a rare and noteworthy 1009 circumstance; the successful pupil was so great and conspicuous for 1010 that day that on the spot every scholar's heart was fired with a fresh 1011 ambition that often lasted a couple of weeks. It is possible that Tom's 1012 mental stomach had never really hungered for one of those prizes, but 1013 unquestionably his entire being had for many a day longed for the glory 1014 and the eclat that came with it. 1015 1016 In due course the superintendent stood up in front of the pulpit, with 1017 a closed hymn-book in his hand and his forefinger inserted between its 1018 leaves, and commanded attention. When a Sunday-school superintendent 1019 makes his customary little speech, a hymn-book in the hand is as 1020 necessary as is the inevitable sheet of music in the hand of a singer 1021 who stands forward on the platform and sings a solo at a concert 1022 --though why, is a mystery: for neither the hymn-book nor the sheet of 1023 music is ever referred to by the sufferer. This superintendent was a 1024 slim creature of thirty-five, with a sandy goatee and short sandy hair; 1025 he wore a stiff standing-collar whose upper edge almost reached his 1026 ears and whose sharp points curved forward abreast the corners of his 1027 mouth--a fence that compelled a straight lookout ahead, and a turning 1028 of the whole body when a side view was required; his chin was propped 1029 on a spreading cravat which was as broad and as long as a bank-note, 1030 and had fringed ends; his boot toes were turned sharply up, in the 1031 fashion of the day, like sleigh-runners--an effect patiently and 1032 laboriously produced by the young men by sitting with their toes 1033 pressed against a wall for hours together. Mr. Walters was very earnest 1034 of mien, and very sincere and honest at heart; and he held sacred 1035 things and places in such reverence, and so separated them from worldly 1036 matters, that unconsciously to himself his Sunday-school voice had 1037 acquired a peculiar intonation which was wholly absent on week-days. He 1038 began after this fashion: 1039 1040 "Now, children, I want you all to sit up just as straight and pretty 1041 as you can and give me all your attention for a minute or two. There 1042 --that is it. That is the way good little boys and girls should do. I see 1043 one little girl who is looking out of the window--I am afraid she 1044 thinks I am out there somewhere--perhaps up in one of the trees making 1045 a speech to the little birds. [Applausive titter.] I want to tell you 1046 how good it makes me feel to see so many bright, clean little faces 1047 assembled in a place like this, learning to do right and be good." And 1048 so forth and so on. It is not necessary to set down the rest of the 1049 oration. It was of a pattern which does not vary, and so it is familiar 1050 to us all. 1051 1052 The latter third of the speech was marred by the resumption of fights 1053 and other recreations among certain of the bad boys, and by fidgetings 1054 and whisperings that extended far and wide, washing even to the bases 1055 of isolated and incorruptible rocks like Sid and Mary. But now every 1056 sound ceased suddenly, with the subsidence of Mr. Walters' voice, and 1057 the conclusion of the speech was received with a burst of silent 1058 gratitude. 1059 1060 A good part of the whispering had been occasioned by an event which 1061 was more or less rare--the entrance of visitors: lawyer Thatcher, 1062 accompanied by a very feeble and aged man; a fine, portly, middle-aged 1063 gentleman with iron-gray hair; and a dignified lady who was doubtless 1064 the latter's wife. The lady was leading a child. Tom had been restless 1065 and full of chafings and repinings; conscience-smitten, too--he could 1066 not meet Amy Lawrence's eye, he could not brook her loving gaze. But 1067 when he saw this small new-comer his soul was all ablaze with bliss in 1068 a moment. The next moment he was "showing off" with all his might 1069 --cuffing boys, pulling hair, making faces--in a word, using every art 1070 that seemed likely to fascinate a girl and win her applause. His 1071 exaltation had but one alloy--the memory of his humiliation in this 1072 angel's garden--and that record in sand was fast washing out, under 1073 the waves of happiness that were sweeping over it now. 1074 1075 The visitors were given the highest seat of honor, and as soon as Mr. 1076 Walters' speech was finished, he introduced them to the school. The 1077 middle-aged man turned out to be a prodigious personage--no less a one 1078 than the county judge--altogether the most august creation these 1079 children had ever looked upon--and they wondered what kind of material 1080 he was made of--and they half wanted to hear him roar, and were half 1081 afraid he might, too. He was from Constantinople, twelve miles away--so 1082 he had travelled, and seen the world--these very eyes had looked upon 1083 the county court-house--which was said to have a tin roof. The awe 1084 which these reflections inspired was attested by the impressive silence 1085 and the ranks of staring eyes. This was the great Judge Thatcher, 1086 brother of their own lawyer. Jeff Thatcher immediately went forward, to 1087 be familiar with the great man and be envied by the school. It would 1088 have been music to his soul to hear the whisperings: 1089 1090 "Look at him, Jim! He's a going up there. Say--look! he's a going to 1091 shake hands with him--he IS shaking hands with him! By jings, don't you 1092 wish you was Jeff?" 1093 1094 Mr. Walters fell to "showing off," with all sorts of official 1095 bustlings and activities, giving orders, delivering judgments, 1096 discharging directions here, there, everywhere that he could find a 1097 target. The librarian "showed off"--running hither and thither with his 1098 arms full of books and making a deal of the splutter and fuss that 1099 insect authority delights in. The young lady teachers "showed off" 1100 --bending sweetly over pupils that were lately being boxed, lifting 1101 pretty warning fingers at bad little boys and patting good ones 1102 lovingly. The young gentlemen teachers "showed off" with small 1103 scoldings and other little displays of authority and fine attention to 1104 discipline--and most of the teachers, of both sexes, found business up 1105 at the library, by the pulpit; and it was business that frequently had 1106 to be done over again two or three times (with much seeming vexation). 1107 The little girls "showed off" in various ways, and the little boys 1108 "showed off" with such diligence that the air was thick with paper wads 1109 and the murmur of scufflings. And above it all the great man sat and 1110 beamed a majestic judicial smile upon all the house, and warmed himself 1111 in the sun of his own grandeur--for he was "showing off," too. 1112 1113 There was only one thing wanting to make Mr. Walters' ecstasy 1114 complete, and that was a chance to deliver a Bible-prize and exhibit a 1115 prodigy. Several pupils had a few yellow tickets, but none had enough 1116 --he had been around among the star pupils inquiring. He would have given 1117 worlds, now, to have that German lad back again with a sound mind. 1118 1119 And now at this moment, when hope was dead, Tom Sawyer came forward 1120 with nine yellow tickets, nine red tickets, and ten blue ones, and 1121 demanded a Bible. This was a thunderbolt out of a clear sky. Walters 1122 was not expecting an application from this source for the next ten 1123 years. But there was no getting around it--here were the certified 1124 checks, and they were good for their face. Tom was therefore elevated 1125 to a place with the Judge and the other elect, and the great news was 1126 announced from headquarters. It was the most stunning surprise of the 1127 decade, and so profound was the sensation that it lifted the new hero 1128 up to the judicial one's altitude, and the school had two marvels to 1129 gaze upon in place of one. The boys were all eaten up with envy--but 1130 those that suffered the bitterest pangs were those who perceived too 1131 late that they themselves had contributed to this hated splendor by 1132 trading tickets to Tom for the wealth he had amassed in selling 1133 whitewashing privileges. These despised themselves, as being the dupes 1134 of a wily fraud, a guileful snake in the grass. 1135 1136 The prize was delivered to Tom with as much effusion as the 1137 superintendent could pump up under the circumstances; but it lacked 1138 somewhat of the true gush, for the poor fellow's instinct taught him 1139 that there was a mystery here that could not well bear the light, 1140 perhaps; it was simply preposterous that this boy had warehoused two 1141 thousand sheaves of Scriptural wisdom on his premises--a dozen would 1142 strain his capacity, without a doubt. 1143 1144 Amy Lawrence was proud and glad, and she tried to make Tom see it in 1145 her face--but he wouldn't look. She wondered; then she was just a grain 1146 troubled; next a dim suspicion came and went--came again; she watched; 1147 a furtive glance told her worlds--and then her heart broke, and she was 1148 jealous, and angry, and the tears came and she hated everybody. Tom 1149 most of all (she thought). 1150 1151 Tom was introduced to the Judge; but his tongue was tied, his breath 1152 would hardly come, his heart quaked--partly because of the awful 1153 greatness of the man, but mainly because he was her parent. He would 1154 have liked to fall down and worship him, if it were in the dark. The 1155 Judge put his hand on Tom's head and called him a fine little man, and 1156 asked him what his name was. The boy stammered, gasped, and got it out: 1157 1158 "Tom." 1159 1160 "Oh, no, not Tom--it is--" 1161 1162 "Thomas." 1163 1164 "Ah, that's it. I thought there was more to it, maybe. That's very 1165 well. But you've another one I daresay, and you'll tell it to me, won't 1166 you?" 1167 1168 "Tell the gentleman your other name, Thomas," said Walters, "and say 1169 sir. You mustn't forget your manners." 1170 1171 "Thomas Sawyer--sir." 1172 1173 "That's it! That's a good boy. Fine boy. Fine, manly little fellow. 1174 Two thousand verses is a great many--very, very great many. And you 1175 never can be sorry for the trouble you took to learn them; for 1176 knowledge is worth more than anything there is in the world; it's what 1177 makes great men and good men; you'll be a great man and a good man 1178 yourself, some day, Thomas, and then you'll look back and say, It's all 1179 owing to the precious Sunday-school privileges of my boyhood--it's all 1180 owing to my dear teachers that taught me to learn--it's all owing to 1181 the good superintendent, who encouraged me, and watched over me, and 1182 gave me a beautiful Bible--a splendid elegant Bible--to keep and have 1183 it all for my own, always--it's all owing to right bringing up! That is 1184 what you will say, Thomas--and you wouldn't take any money for those 1185 two thousand verses--no indeed you wouldn't. And now you wouldn't mind 1186 telling me and this lady some of the things you've learned--no, I know 1187 you wouldn't--for we are proud of little boys that learn. Now, no 1188 doubt you know the names of all the twelve disciples. Won't you tell us 1189 the names of the first two that were appointed?" 1190 1191 Tom was tugging at a button-hole and looking sheepish. He blushed, 1192 now, and his eyes fell. Mr. Walters' heart sank within him. He said to 1193 himself, it is not possible that the boy can answer the simplest 1194 question--why DID the Judge ask him? Yet he felt obliged to speak up 1195 and say: 1196 1197 "Answer the gentleman, Thomas--don't be afraid." 1198 1199 Tom still hung fire. 1200 1201 "Now I know you'll tell me," said the lady. "The names of the first 1202 two disciples were--" 1203 1204 "DAVID AND GOLIAH!" 1205 1206 Let us draw the curtain of charity over the rest of the scene. 1207 1208 1209 1210 CHAPTER V 1211 1212 ABOUT half-past ten the cracked bell of the small church began to 1213 ring, and presently the people began to gather for the morning sermon. 1214 The Sunday-school children distributed themselves about the house and 1215 occupied pews with their parents, so as to be under supervision. Aunt 1216 Polly came, and Tom and Sid and Mary sat with her--Tom being placed 1217 next the aisle, in order that he might be as far away from the open 1218 window and the seductive outside summer scenes as possible. The crowd 1219 filed up the aisles: the aged and needy postmaster, who had seen better 1220 days; the mayor and his wife--for they had a mayor there, among other 1221 unnecessaries; the justice of the peace; the widow Douglass, fair, 1222 smart, and forty, a generous, good-hearted soul and well-to-do, her 1223 hill mansion the only palace in the town, and the most hospitable and 1224 much the most lavish in the matter of festivities that St. Petersburg 1225 could boast; the bent and venerable Major and Mrs. Ward; lawyer 1226 Riverson, the new notable from a distance; next the belle of the 1227 village, followed by a troop of lawn-clad and ribbon-decked young 1228 heart-breakers; then all the young clerks in town in a body--for they 1229 had stood in the vestibule sucking their cane-heads, a circling wall of 1230 oiled and simpering admirers, till the last girl had run their gantlet; 1231 and last of all came the Model Boy, Willie Mufferson, taking as heedful 1232 care of his mother as if she were cut glass. He always brought his 1233 mother to church, and was the pride of all the matrons. The boys all 1234 hated him, he was so good. And besides, he had been "thrown up to them" 1235 so much. His white handkerchief was hanging out of his pocket behind, as 1236 usual on Sundays--accidentally. Tom had no handkerchief, and he looked 1237 upon boys who had as snobs. 1238 1239 The congregation being fully assembled, now, the bell rang once more, 1240 to warn laggards and stragglers, and then a solemn hush fell upon the 1241 church which was only broken by the tittering and whispering of the 1242 choir in the gallery. The choir always tittered and whispered all 1243 through service. There was once a church choir that was not ill-bred, 1244 but I have forgotten where it was, now. It was a great many years ago, 1245 and I can scarcely remember anything about it, but I think it was in 1246 some foreign country. 1247 1248 The minister gave out the hymn, and read it through with a relish, in 1249 a peculiar style which was much admired in that part of the country. 1250 His voice began on a medium key and climbed steadily up till it reached 1251 a certain point, where it bore with strong emphasis upon the topmost 1252 word and then plunged down as if from a spring-board: 1253 1254 Shall I be car-ri-ed toe the skies, on flow'ry BEDS of ease, 1255 1256 Whilst others fight to win the prize, and sail thro' BLOODY seas? 1257 1258 He was regarded as a wonderful reader. At church "sociables" he was 1259 always called upon to read poetry; and when he was through, the ladies 1260 would lift up their hands and let them fall helplessly in their laps, 1261 and "wall" their eyes, and shake their heads, as much as to say, "Words 1262 cannot express it; it is too beautiful, TOO beautiful for this mortal 1263 earth." 1264 1265 After the hymn had been sung, the Rev. Mr. Sprague turned himself into 1266 a bulletin-board, and read off "notices" of meetings and societies and 1267 things till it seemed that the list would stretch out to the crack of 1268 doom--a queer custom which is still kept up in America, even in cities, 1269 away here in this age of abundant newspapers. Often, the less there is 1270 to justify a traditional custom, the harder it is to get rid of it. 1271 1272 And now the minister prayed. A good, generous prayer it was, and went 1273 into details: it pleaded for the church, and the little children of the 1274 church; for the other churches of the village; for the village itself; 1275 for the county; for the State; for the State officers; for the United 1276 States; for the churches of the United States; for Congress; for the 1277 President; for the officers of the Government; for poor sailors, tossed 1278 by stormy seas; for the oppressed millions groaning under the heel of 1279 European monarchies and Oriental despotisms; for such as have the light 1280 and the good tidings, and yet have not eyes to see nor ears to hear 1281 withal; for the heathen in the far islands of the sea; and closed with 1282 a supplication that the words he was about to speak might find grace 1283 and favor, and be as seed sown in fertile ground, yielding in time a 1284 grateful harvest of good. Amen. 1285 1286 There was a rustling of dresses, and the standing congregation sat 1287 down. The boy whose history this book relates did not enjoy the prayer, 1288 he only endured it--if he even did that much. He was restive all 1289 through it; he kept tally of the details of the prayer, unconsciously 1290 --for he was not listening, but he knew the ground of old, and the 1291 clergyman's regular route over it--and when a little trifle of new 1292 matter was interlarded, his ear detected it and his whole nature 1293 resented it; he considered additions unfair, and scoundrelly. In the 1294 midst of the prayer a fly had lit on the back of the pew in front of 1295 him and tortured his spirit by calmly rubbing its hands together, 1296 embracing its head with its arms, and polishing it so vigorously that 1297 it seemed to almost part company with the body, and the slender thread 1298 of a neck was exposed to view; scraping its wings with its hind legs 1299 and smoothing them to its body as if they had been coat-tails; going 1300 through its whole toilet as tranquilly as if it knew it was perfectly 1301 safe. As indeed it was; for as sorely as Tom's hands itched to grab for 1302 it they did not dare--he believed his soul would be instantly destroyed 1303 if he did such a thing while the prayer was going on. But with the 1304 closing sentence his hand began to curve and steal forward; and the 1305 instant the "Amen" was out the fly was a prisoner of war. His aunt 1306 detected the act and made him let it go. 1307 1308 The minister gave out his text and droned along monotonously through 1309 an argument that was so prosy that many a head by and by began to nod 1310 --and yet it was an argument that dealt in limitless fire and brimstone 1311 and thinned the predestined elect down to a company so small as to be 1312 hardly worth the saving. Tom counted the pages of the sermon; after 1313 church he always knew how many pages there had been, but he seldom knew 1314 anything else about the discourse. However, this time he was really 1315 interested for a little while. The minister made a grand and moving 1316 picture of the assembling together of the world's hosts at the 1317 millennium when the lion and the lamb should lie down together and a 1318 little child should lead them. But the pathos, the lesson, the moral of 1319 the great spectacle were lost upon the boy; he only thought of the 1320 conspicuousness of the principal character before the on-looking 1321 nations; his face lit with the thought, and he said to himself that he 1322 wished he could be that child, if it was a tame lion. 1323 1324 Now he lapsed into suffering again, as the dry argument was resumed. 1325 Presently he bethought him of a treasure he had and got it out. It was 1326 a large black beetle with formidable jaws--a "pinchbug," he called it. 1327 It was in a percussion-cap box. The first thing the beetle did was to 1328 take him by the finger. A natural fillip followed, the beetle went 1329 floundering into the aisle and lit on its back, and the hurt finger 1330 went into the boy's mouth. The beetle lay there working its helpless 1331 legs, unable to turn over. Tom eyed it, and longed for it; but it was 1332 safe out of his reach. Other people uninterested in the sermon found 1333 relief in the beetle, and they eyed it too. Presently a vagrant poodle 1334 dog came idling along, sad at heart, lazy with the summer softness and 1335 the quiet, weary of captivity, sighing for change. He spied the beetle; 1336 the drooping tail lifted and wagged. He surveyed the prize; walked 1337 around it; smelt at it from a safe distance; walked around it again; 1338 grew bolder, and took a closer smell; then lifted his lip and made a 1339 gingerly snatch at it, just missing it; made another, and another; 1340 began to enjoy the diversion; subsided to his stomach with the beetle 1341 between his paws, and continued his experiments; grew weary at last, 1342 and then indifferent and absent-minded. His head nodded, and little by 1343 little his chin descended and touched the enemy, who seized it. There 1344 was a sharp yelp, a flirt of the poodle's head, and the beetle fell a 1345 couple of yards away, and lit on its back once more. The neighboring 1346 spectators shook with a gentle inward joy, several faces went behind 1347 fans and handkerchiefs, and Tom was entirely happy. The dog looked 1348 foolish, and probably felt so; but there was resentment in his heart, 1349 too, and a craving for revenge. So he went to the beetle and began a 1350 wary attack on it again; jumping at it from every point of a circle, 1351 lighting with his fore-paws within an inch of the creature, making even 1352 closer snatches at it with his teeth, and jerking his head till his 1353 ears flapped again. But he grew tired once more, after a while; tried 1354 to amuse himself with a fly but found no relief; followed an ant 1355 around, with his nose close to the floor, and quickly wearied of that; 1356 yawned, sighed, forgot the beetle entirely, and sat down on it. Then 1357 there was a wild yelp of agony and the poodle went sailing up the 1358 aisle; the yelps continued, and so did the dog; he crossed the house in 1359 front of the altar; he flew down the other aisle; he crossed before the 1360 doors; he clamored up the home-stretch; his anguish grew with his 1361 progress, till presently he was but a woolly comet moving in its orbit 1362 with the gleam and the speed of light. At last the frantic sufferer 1363 sheered from its course, and sprang into its master's lap; he flung it 1364 out of the window, and the voice of distress quickly thinned away and 1365 died in the distance. 1366 1367 By this time the whole church was red-faced and suffocating with 1368 suppressed laughter, and the sermon had come to a dead standstill. The 1369 discourse was resumed presently, but it went lame and halting, all 1370 possibility of impressiveness being at an end; for even the gravest 1371 sentiments were constantly being received with a smothered burst of 1372 unholy mirth, under cover of some remote pew-back, as if the poor 1373 parson had said a rarely facetious thing. It was a genuine relief to 1374 the whole congregation when the ordeal was over and the benediction 1375 pronounced. 1376 1377 Tom Sawyer went home quite cheerful, thinking to himself that there 1378 was some satisfaction about divine service when there was a bit of 1379 variety in it. He had but one marring thought; he was willing that the 1380 dog should play with his pinchbug, but he did not think it was upright 1381 in him to carry it off. 1382 1383 1384 1385 CHAPTER VI 1386 1387 MONDAY morning found Tom Sawyer miserable. Monday morning always found 1388 him so--because it began another week's slow suffering in school. He 1389 generally began that day with wishing he had had no intervening 1390 holiday, it made the going into captivity and fetters again so much 1391 more odious. 1392 1393 Tom lay thinking. Presently it occurred to him that he wished he was 1394 sick; then he could stay home from school. Here was a vague 1395 possibility. He canvassed his system. No ailment was found, and he 1396 investigated again. This time he thought he could detect colicky 1397 symptoms, and he began to encourage them with considerable hope. But 1398 they soon grew feeble, and presently died wholly away. He reflected 1399 further. Suddenly he discovered something. One of his upper front teeth 1400 was loose. This was lucky; he was about to begin to groan, as a 1401 "starter," as he called it, when it occurred to him that if he came 1402 into court with that argument, his aunt would pull it out, and that 1403 would hurt. So he thought he would hold the tooth in reserve for the 1404 present, and seek further. Nothing offered for some little time, and 1405 then he remembered hearing the doctor tell about a certain thing that 1406 laid up a patient for two or three weeks and threatened to make him 1407 lose a finger. So the boy eagerly drew his sore toe from under the 1408 sheet and held it up for inspection. But now he did not know the 1409 necessary symptoms. However, it seemed well worth while to chance it, 1410 so he fell to groaning with considerable spirit. 1411 1412 But Sid slept on unconscious. 1413 1414 Tom groaned louder, and fancied that he began to feel pain in the toe. 1415 1416 No result from Sid. 1417 1418 Tom was panting with his exertions by this time. He took a rest and 1419 then swelled himself up and fetched a succession of admirable groans. 1420 1421 Sid snored on. 1422 1423 Tom was aggravated. He said, "Sid, Sid!" and shook him. This course 1424 worked well, and Tom began to groan again. Sid yawned, stretched, then 1425 brought himself up on his elbow with a snort, and began to stare at 1426 Tom. Tom went on groaning. Sid said: 1427 1428 "Tom! Say, Tom!" [No response.] "Here, Tom! TOM! What is the matter, 1429 Tom?" And he shook him and looked in his face anxiously. 1430 1431 Tom moaned out: 1432 1433 "Oh, don't, Sid. Don't joggle me." 1434 1435 "Why, what's the matter, Tom? I must call auntie." 1436 1437 "No--never mind. It'll be over by and by, maybe. Don't call anybody." 1438 1439 "But I must! DON'T groan so, Tom, it's awful. How long you been this 1440 way?" 1441 1442 "Hours. Ouch! Oh, don't stir so, Sid, you'll kill me." 1443 1444 "Tom, why didn't you wake me sooner? Oh, Tom, DON'T! It makes my 1445 flesh crawl to hear you. Tom, what is the matter?" 1446 1447 "I forgive you everything, Sid. [Groan.] Everything you've ever done 1448 to me. When I'm gone--" 1449 1450 "Oh, Tom, you ain't dying, are you? Don't, Tom--oh, don't. Maybe--" 1451 1452 "I forgive everybody, Sid. [Groan.] Tell 'em so, Sid. And Sid, you 1453 give my window-sash and my cat with one eye to that new girl that's 1454 come to town, and tell her--" 1455 1456 But Sid had snatched his clothes and gone. Tom was suffering in 1457 reality, now, so handsomely was his imagination working, and so his 1458 groans had gathered quite a genuine tone. 1459 1460 Sid flew down-stairs and said: 1461 1462 "Oh, Aunt Polly, come! Tom's dying!" 1463 1464 "Dying!" 1465 1466 "Yes'm. Don't wait--come quick!" 1467 1468 "Rubbage! I don't believe it!" 1469 1470 But she fled up-stairs, nevertheless, with Sid and Mary at her heels. 1471 And her face grew white, too, and her lip trembled. When she reached 1472 the bedside she gasped out: 1473 1474 "You, Tom! Tom, what's the matter with you?" 1475 1476 "Oh, auntie, I'm--" 1477 1478 "What's the matter with you--what is the matter with you, child?" 1479 1480 "Oh, auntie, my sore toe's mortified!" 1481 1482 The old lady sank down into a chair and laughed a little, then cried a 1483 little, then did both together. This restored her and she said: 1484 1485 "Tom, what a turn you did give me. Now you shut up that nonsense and 1486 climb out of this." 1487 1488 The groans ceased and the pain vanished from the toe. The boy felt a 1489 little foolish, and he said: 1490 1491 "Aunt Polly, it SEEMED mortified, and it hurt so I never minded my 1492 tooth at all." 1493 1494 "Your tooth, indeed! What's the matter with your tooth?" 1495 1496 "One of them's loose, and it aches perfectly awful." 1497 1498 "There, there, now, don't begin that groaning again. Open your mouth. 1499 Well--your tooth IS loose, but you're not going to die about that. 1500 Mary, get me a silk thread, and a chunk of fire out of the kitchen." 1501 1502 Tom said: 1503 1504 "Oh, please, auntie, don't pull it out. It don't hurt any more. I wish 1505 I may never stir if it does. Please don't, auntie. I don't want to stay 1506 home from school." 1507 1508 "Oh, you don't, don't you? So all this row was because you thought 1509 you'd get to stay home from school and go a-fishing? Tom, Tom, I love 1510 you so, and you seem to try every way you can to break my old heart 1511 with your outrageousness." By this time the dental instruments were 1512 ready. The old lady made one end of the silk thread fast to Tom's tooth 1513 with a loop and tied the other to the bedpost. Then she seized the 1514 chunk of fire and suddenly thrust it almost into the boy's face. The 1515 tooth hung dangling by the bedpost, now. 1516 1517 But all trials bring their compensations. As Tom wended to school 1518 after breakfast, he was the envy of every boy he met because the gap in 1519 his upper row of teeth enabled him to expectorate in a new and 1520 admirable way. He gathered quite a following of lads interested in the 1521 exhibition; and one that had cut his finger and had been a centre of 1522 fascination and homage up to this time, now found himself suddenly 1523 without an adherent, and shorn of his glory. His heart was heavy, and 1524 he said with a disdain which he did not feel that it wasn't anything to 1525 spit like Tom Sawyer; but another boy said, "Sour grapes!" and he 1526 wandered away a dismantled hero. 1527 1528 Shortly Tom came upon the juvenile pariah of the village, Huckleberry 1529 Finn, son of the town drunkard. Huckleberry was cordially hated and 1530 dreaded by all the mothers of the town, because he was idle and lawless 1531 and vulgar and bad--and because all their children admired him so, and 1532 delighted in his forbidden society, and wished they dared to be like 1533 him. Tom was like the rest of the respectable boys, in that he envied 1534 Huckleberry his gaudy outcast condition, and was under strict orders 1535 not to play with him. So he played with him every time he got a chance. 1536 Huckleberry was always dressed in the cast-off clothes of full-grown 1537 men, and they were in perennial bloom and fluttering with rags. His hat 1538 was a vast ruin with a wide crescent lopped out of its brim; his coat, 1539 when he wore one, hung nearly to his heels and had the rearward buttons 1540 far down the back; but one suspender supported his trousers; the seat 1541 of the trousers bagged low and contained nothing, the fringed legs 1542 dragged in the dirt when not rolled up. 1543 1544 Huckleberry came and went, at his own free will. He slept on doorsteps 1545 in fine weather and in empty hogsheads in wet; he did not have to go to 1546 school or to church, or call any being master or obey anybody; he could 1547 go fishing or swimming when and where he chose, and stay as long as it 1548 suited him; nobody forbade him to fight; he could sit up as late as he 1549 pleased; he was always the first boy that went barefoot in the spring 1550 and the last to resume leather in the fall; he never had to wash, nor 1551 put on clean clothes; he could swear wonderfully. In a word, everything 1552 that goes to make life precious that boy had. So thought every 1553 harassed, hampered, respectable boy in St. Petersburg. 1554 1555 Tom hailed the romantic outcast: 1556 1557 "Hello, Huckleberry!" 1558 1559 "Hello yourself, and see how you like it." 1560 1561 "What's that you got?" 1562 1563 "Dead cat." 1564 1565 "Lemme see him, Huck. My, he's pretty stiff. Where'd you get him?" 1566 1567 "Bought him off'n a boy." 1568 1569 "What did you give?" 1570 1571 "I give a blue ticket and a bladder that I got at the slaughter-house." 1572 1573 "Where'd you get the blue ticket?" 1574 1575 "Bought it off'n Ben Rogers two weeks ago for a hoop-stick." 1576 1577 "Say--what is dead cats good for, Huck?" 1578 1579 "Good for? Cure warts with." 1580 1581 "No! Is that so? I know something that's better." 1582 1583 "I bet you don't. What is it?" 1584 1585 "Why, spunk-water." 1586 1587 "Spunk-water! I wouldn't give a dern for spunk-water." 1588 1589 "You wouldn't, wouldn't you? D'you ever try it?" 1590 1591 "No, I hain't. But Bob Tanner did." 1592 1593 "Who told you so!" 1594 1595 "Why, he told Jeff Thatcher, and Jeff told Johnny Baker, and Johnny 1596 told Jim Hollis, and Jim told Ben Rogers, and Ben told a nigger, and 1597 the nigger told me. There now!" 1598 1599 "Well, what of it? They'll all lie. Leastways all but the nigger. I 1600 don't know HIM. But I never see a nigger that WOULDN'T lie. Shucks! Now 1601 you tell me how Bob Tanner done it, Huck." 1602 1603 "Why, he took and dipped his hand in a rotten stump where the 1604 rain-water was." 1605 1606 "In the daytime?" 1607 1608 "Certainly." 1609 1610 "With his face to the stump?" 1611 1612 "Yes. Least I reckon so." 1613 1614 "Did he say anything?" 1615 1616 "I don't reckon he did. I don't know." 1617 1618 "Aha! Talk about trying to cure warts with spunk-water such a blame 1619 fool way as that! Why, that ain't a-going to do any good. You got to go 1620 all by yourself, to the middle of the woods, where you know there's a 1621 spunk-water stump, and just as it's midnight you back up against the 1622 stump and jam your hand in and say: 1623 1624 'Barley-corn, barley-corn, injun-meal shorts, 1625 Spunk-water, spunk-water, swaller these warts,' 1626 1627 and then walk away quick, eleven steps, with your eyes shut, and then 1628 turn around three times and walk home without speaking to anybody. 1629 Because if you speak the charm's busted." 1630 1631 "Well, that sounds like a good way; but that ain't the way Bob Tanner 1632 done." 1633 1634 "No, sir, you can bet he didn't, becuz he's the wartiest boy in this 1635 town; and he wouldn't have a wart on him if he'd knowed how to work 1636 spunk-water. I've took off thousands of warts off of my hands that way, 1637 Huck. I play with frogs so much that I've always got considerable many 1638 warts. Sometimes I take 'em off with a bean." 1639 1640 "Yes, bean's good. I've done that." 1641 1642 "Have you? What's your way?" 1643 1644 "You take and split the bean, and cut the wart so as to get some 1645 blood, and then you put the blood on one piece of the bean and take and 1646 dig a hole and bury it 'bout midnight at the crossroads in the dark of 1647 the moon, and then you burn up the rest of the bean. You see that piece 1648 that's got the blood on it will keep drawing and drawing, trying to 1649 fetch the other piece to it, and so that helps the blood to draw the 1650 wart, and pretty soon off she comes." 1651 1652 "Yes, that's it, Huck--that's it; though when you're burying it if you 1653 say 'Down bean; off wart; come no more to bother me!' it's better. 1654 That's the way Joe Harper does, and he's been nearly to Coonville and 1655 most everywheres. But say--how do you cure 'em with dead cats?" 1656 1657 "Why, you take your cat and go and get in the graveyard 'long about 1658 midnight when somebody that was wicked has been buried; and when it's 1659 midnight a devil will come, or maybe two or three, but you can't see 1660 'em, you can only hear something like the wind, or maybe hear 'em talk; 1661 and when they're taking that feller away, you heave your cat after 'em 1662 and say, 'Devil follow corpse, cat follow devil, warts follow cat, I'm 1663 done with ye!' That'll fetch ANY wart." 1664 1665 "Sounds right. D'you ever try it, Huck?" 1666 1667 "No, but old Mother Hopkins told me." 1668 1669 "Well, I reckon it's so, then. Becuz they say she's a witch." 1670 1671 "Say! Why, Tom, I KNOW she is. She witched pap. Pap says so his own 1672 self. He come along one day, and he see she was a-witching him, so he 1673 took up a rock, and if she hadn't dodged, he'd a got her. Well, that 1674 very night he rolled off'n a shed wher' he was a layin drunk, and broke 1675 his arm." 1676 1677 "Why, that's awful. How did he know she was a-witching him?" 1678 1679 "Lord, pap can tell, easy. Pap says when they keep looking at you 1680 right stiddy, they're a-witching you. Specially if they mumble. Becuz 1681 when they mumble they're saying the Lord's Prayer backards." 1682 1683 "Say, Hucky, when you going to try the cat?" 1684 1685 "To-night. I reckon they'll come after old Hoss Williams to-night." 1686 1687 "But they buried him Saturday. Didn't they get him Saturday night?" 1688 1689 "Why, how you talk! How could their charms work till midnight?--and 1690 THEN it's Sunday. Devils don't slosh around much of a Sunday, I don't 1691 reckon." 1692 1693 "I never thought of that. That's so. Lemme go with you?" 1694 1695 "Of course--if you ain't afeard." 1696 1697 "Afeard! 'Tain't likely. Will you meow?" 1698 1699 "Yes--and you meow back, if you get a chance. Last time, you kep' me 1700 a-meowing around till old Hays went to throwing rocks at me and says 1701 'Dern that cat!' and so I hove a brick through his window--but don't 1702 you tell." 1703 1704 "I won't. I couldn't meow that night, becuz auntie was watching me, 1705 but I'll meow this time. Say--what's that?" 1706 1707 "Nothing but a tick." 1708 1709 "Where'd you get him?" 1710 1711 "Out in the woods." 1712 1713 "What'll you take for him?" 1714 1715 "I don't know. I don't want to sell him." 1716 1717 "All right. It's a mighty small tick, anyway." 1718 1719 "Oh, anybody can run a tick down that don't belong to them. I'm 1720 satisfied with it. It's a good enough tick for me." 1721 1722 "Sho, there's ticks a plenty. I could have a thousand of 'em if I 1723 wanted to." 1724 1725 "Well, why don't you? Becuz you know mighty well you can't. This is a 1726 pretty early tick, I reckon. It's the first one I've seen this year." 1727 1728 "Say, Huck--I'll give you my tooth for him." 1729 1730 "Less see it." 1731 1732 Tom got out a bit of paper and carefully unrolled it. Huckleberry 1733 viewed it wistfully. The temptation was very strong. At last he said: 1734 1735 "Is it genuwyne?" 1736 1737 Tom lifted his lip and showed the vacancy. 1738 1739 "Well, all right," said Huckleberry, "it's a trade." 1740 1741 Tom enclosed the tick in the percussion-cap box that had lately been 1742 the pinchbug's prison, and the boys separated, each feeling wealthier 1743 than before. 1744 1745 When Tom reached the little isolated frame schoolhouse, he strode in 1746 briskly, with the manner of one who had come with all honest speed. 1747 He hung his hat on a peg and flung himself into his seat with 1748 business-like alacrity. The master, throned on high in his great 1749 splint-bottom arm-chair, was dozing, lulled by the drowsy hum of study. 1750 The interruption roused him. 1751 1752 "Thomas Sawyer!" 1753 1754 Tom knew that when his name was pronounced in full, it meant trouble. 1755 1756 "Sir!" 1757 1758 "Come up here. Now, sir, why are you late again, as usual?" 1759 1760 Tom was about to take refuge in a lie, when he saw two long tails of 1761 yellow hair hanging down a back that he recognized by the electric 1762 sympathy of love; and by that form was THE ONLY VACANT PLACE on the 1763 girls' side of the schoolhouse. He instantly said: 1764 1765 "I STOPPED TO TALK WITH HUCKLEBERRY FINN!" 1766 1767 The master's pulse stood still, and he stared helplessly. The buzz of 1768 study ceased. The pupils wondered if this foolhardy boy had lost his 1769 mind. The master said: 1770 1771 "You--you did what?" 1772 1773 "Stopped to talk with Huckleberry Finn." 1774 1775 There was no mistaking the words. 1776 1777 "Thomas Sawyer, this is the most astounding confession I have ever 1778 listened to. No mere ferule will answer for this offence. Take off your 1779 jacket." 1780 1781 The master's arm performed until it was tired and the stock of 1782 switches notably diminished. Then the order followed: 1783 1784 "Now, sir, go and sit with the girls! And let this be a warning to you." 1785 1786 The titter that rippled around the room appeared to abash the boy, but 1787 in reality that result was caused rather more by his worshipful awe of 1788 his unknown idol and the dread pleasure that lay in his high good 1789 fortune. He sat down upon the end of the pine bench and the girl 1790 hitched herself away from him with a toss of her head. Nudges and winks 1791 and whispers traversed the room, but Tom sat still, with his arms upon 1792 the long, low desk before him, and seemed to study his book. 1793 1794 By and by attention ceased from him, and the accustomed school murmur 1795 rose upon the dull air once more. Presently the boy began to steal 1796 furtive glances at the girl. She observed it, "made a mouth" at him and 1797 gave him the back of her head for the space of a minute. When she 1798 cautiously faced around again, a peach lay before her. She thrust it 1799 away. Tom gently put it back. She thrust it away again, but with less 1800 animosity. Tom patiently returned it to its place. Then she let it 1801 remain. Tom scrawled on his slate, "Please take it--I got more." The 1802 girl glanced at the words, but made no sign. Now the boy began to draw 1803 something on the slate, hiding his work with his left hand. For a time 1804 the girl refused to notice; but her human curiosity presently began to 1805 manifest itself by hardly perceptible signs. The boy worked on, 1806 apparently unconscious. The girl made a sort of noncommittal attempt to 1807 see, but the boy did not betray that he was aware of it. At last she 1808 gave in and hesitatingly whispered: 1809 1810 "Let me see it." 1811 1812 Tom partly uncovered a dismal caricature of a house with two gable 1813 ends to it and a corkscrew of smoke issuing from the chimney. Then the 1814 girl's interest began to fasten itself upon the work and she forgot 1815 everything else. When it was finished, she gazed a moment, then 1816 whispered: 1817 1818 "It's nice--make a man." 1819 1820 The artist erected a man in the front yard, that resembled a derrick. 1821 He could have stepped over the house; but the girl was not 1822 hypercritical; she was satisfied with the monster, and whispered: 1823 1824 "It's a beautiful man--now make me coming along." 1825 1826 Tom drew an hour-glass with a full moon and straw limbs to it and 1827 armed the spreading fingers with a portentous fan. The girl said: 1828 1829 "It's ever so nice--I wish I could draw." 1830 1831 "It's easy," whispered Tom, "I'll learn you." 1832 1833 "Oh, will you? When?" 1834 1835 "At noon. Do you go home to dinner?" 1836 1837 "I'll stay if you will." 1838 1839 "Good--that's a whack. What's your name?" 1840 1841 "Becky Thatcher. What's yours? Oh, I know. It's Thomas Sawyer." 1842 1843 "That's the name they lick me by. I'm Tom when I'm good. You call me 1844 Tom, will you?" 1845 1846 "Yes." 1847 1848 Now Tom began to scrawl something on the slate, hiding the words from 1849 the girl. But she was not backward this time. She begged to see. Tom 1850 said: 1851 1852 "Oh, it ain't anything." 1853 1854 "Yes it is." 1855 1856 "No it ain't. You don't want to see." 1857 1858 "Yes I do, indeed I do. Please let me." 1859 1860 "You'll tell." 1861 1862 "No I won't--deed and deed and double deed won't." 1863 1864 "You won't tell anybody at all? Ever, as long as you live?" 1865 1866 "No, I won't ever tell ANYbody. Now let me." 1867 1868 "Oh, YOU don't want to see!" 1869 1870 "Now that you treat me so, I WILL see." And she put her small hand 1871 upon his and a little scuffle ensued, Tom pretending to resist in 1872 earnest but letting his hand slip by degrees till these words were 1873 revealed: "I LOVE YOU." 1874 1875 "Oh, you bad thing!" And she hit his hand a smart rap, but reddened 1876 and looked pleased, nevertheless. 1877 1878 Just at this juncture the boy felt a slow, fateful grip closing on his 1879 ear, and a steady lifting impulse. In that wise he was borne across the 1880 house and deposited in his own seat, under a peppering fire of giggles 1881 from the whole school. Then the master stood over him during a few 1882 awful moments, and finally moved away to his throne without saying a 1883 word. But although Tom's ear tingled, his heart was jubilant. 1884 1885 As the school quieted down Tom made an honest effort to study, but the 1886 turmoil within him was too great. In turn he took his place in the 1887 reading class and made a botch of it; then in the geography class and 1888 turned lakes into mountains, mountains into rivers, and rivers into 1889 continents, till chaos was come again; then in the spelling class, and 1890 got "turned down," by a succession of mere baby words, till he brought 1891 up at the foot and yielded up the pewter medal which he had worn with 1892 ostentation for months. 1893 1894 1895 1896 CHAPTER VII 1897 1898 THE harder Tom tried to fasten his mind on his book, the more his 1899 ideas wandered. So at last, with a sigh and a yawn, he gave it up. It 1900 seemed to him that the noon recess would never come. The air was 1901 utterly dead. There was not a breath stirring. It was the sleepiest of 1902 sleepy days. The drowsing murmur of the five and twenty studying 1903 scholars soothed the soul like the spell that is in the murmur of bees. 1904 Away off in the flaming sunshine, Cardiff Hill lifted its soft green 1905 sides through a shimmering veil of heat, tinted with the purple of 1906 distance; a few birds floated on lazy wing high in the air; no other 1907 living thing was visible but some cows, and they were asleep. Tom's 1908 heart ached to be free, or else to have something of interest to do to 1909 pass the dreary time. His hand wandered into his pocket and his face 1910 lit up with a glow of gratitude that was prayer, though he did not know 1911 it. Then furtively the percussion-cap box came out. He released the 1912 tick and put him on the long flat desk. The creature probably glowed 1913 with a gratitude that amounted to prayer, too, at this moment, but it 1914 was premature: for when he started thankfully to travel off, Tom turned 1915 him aside with a pin and made him take a new direction. 1916 1917 Tom's bosom friend sat next him, suffering just as Tom had been, and 1918 now he was deeply and gratefully interested in this entertainment in an 1919 instant. This bosom friend was Joe Harper. The two boys were sworn 1920 friends all the week, and embattled enemies on Saturdays. Joe took a 1921 pin out of his lapel and began to assist in exercising the prisoner. 1922 The sport grew in interest momently. Soon Tom said that they were 1923 interfering with each other, and neither getting the fullest benefit of 1924 the tick. So he put Joe's slate on the desk and drew a line down the 1925 middle of it from top to bottom. 1926 1927 "Now," said he, "as long as he is on your side you can stir him up and 1928 I'll let him alone; but if you let him get away and get on my side, 1929 you're to leave him alone as long as I can keep him from crossing over." 1930 1931 "All right, go ahead; start him up." 1932 1933 The tick escaped from Tom, presently, and crossed the equator. Joe 1934 harassed him awhile, and then he got away and crossed back again. This 1935 change of base occurred often. While one boy was worrying the tick with 1936 absorbing interest, the other would look on with interest as strong, 1937 the two heads bowed together over the slate, and the two souls dead to 1938 all things else. At last luck seemed to settle and abide with Joe. The 1939 tick tried this, that, and the other course, and got as excited and as 1940 anxious as the boys themselves, but time and again just as he would 1941 have victory in his very grasp, so to speak, and Tom's fingers would be 1942 twitching to begin, Joe's pin would deftly head him off, and keep 1943 possession. At last Tom could stand it no longer. The temptation was 1944 too strong. So he reached out and lent a hand with his pin. Joe was 1945 angry in a moment. Said he: 1946 1947 "Tom, you let him alone." 1948 1949 "I only just want to stir him up a little, Joe." 1950 1951 "No, sir, it ain't fair; you just let him alone." 1952 1953 "Blame it, I ain't going to stir him much." 1954 1955 "Let him alone, I tell you." 1956 1957 "I won't!" 1958 1959 "You shall--he's on my side of the line." 1960 1961 "Look here, Joe Harper, whose is that tick?" 1962 1963 "I don't care whose tick he is--he's on my side of the line, and you 1964 sha'n't touch him." 1965 1966 "Well, I'll just bet I will, though. He's my tick and I'll do what I 1967 blame please with him, or die!" 1968 1969 A tremendous whack came down on Tom's shoulders, and its duplicate on 1970 Joe's; and for the space of two minutes the dust continued to fly from 1971 the two jackets and the whole school to enjoy it. The boys had been too 1972 absorbed to notice the hush that had stolen upon the school awhile 1973 before when the master came tiptoeing down the room and stood over 1974 them. He had contemplated a good part of the performance before he 1975 contributed his bit of variety to it. 1976 1977 When school broke up at noon, Tom flew to Becky Thatcher, and 1978 whispered in her ear: 1979 1980 "Put on your bonnet and let on you're going home; and when you get to 1981 the corner, give the rest of 'em the slip, and turn down through the 1982 lane and come back. I'll go the other way and come it over 'em the same 1983 way." 1984 1985 So the one went off with one group of scholars, and the other with 1986 another. In a little while the two met at the bottom of the lane, and 1987 when they reached the school they had it all to themselves. Then they 1988 sat together, with a slate before them, and Tom gave Becky the pencil 1989 and held her hand in his, guiding it, and so created another surprising 1990 house. When the interest in art began to wane, the two fell to talking. 1991 Tom was swimming in bliss. He said: 1992 1993 "Do you love rats?" 1994 1995 "No! I hate them!" 1996 1997 "Well, I do, too--LIVE ones. But I mean dead ones, to swing round your 1998 head with a string." 1999 2000 "No, I don't care for rats much, anyway. What I like is chewing-gum." 2001 2002 "Oh, I should say so! I wish I had some now." 2003 2004 "Do you? I've got some. I'll let you chew it awhile, but you must give 2005 it back to me." 2006 2007 That was agreeable, so they chewed it turn about, and dangled their 2008 legs against the bench in excess of contentment. 2009 2010 "Was you ever at a circus?" said Tom. 2011 2012 "Yes, and my pa's going to take me again some time, if I'm good." 2013 2014 "I been to the circus three or four times--lots of times. Church ain't 2015 shucks to a circus. There's things going on at a circus all the time. 2016 I'm going to be a clown in a circus when I grow up." 2017 2018 "Oh, are you! That will be nice. They're so lovely, all spotted up." 2019 2020 "Yes, that's so. And they get slathers of money--most a dollar a day, 2021 Ben Rogers says. Say, Becky, was you ever engaged?" 2022 2023 "What's that?" 2024 2025 "Why, engaged to be married." 2026 2027 "No." 2028 2029 "Would you like to?" 2030 2031 "I reckon so. I don't know. What is it like?" 2032 2033 "Like? Why it ain't like anything. You only just tell a boy you won't 2034 ever have anybody but him, ever ever ever, and then you kiss and that's 2035 all. Anybody can do it." 2036 2037 "Kiss? What do you kiss for?" 2038 2039 "Why, that, you know, is to--well, they always do that." 2040 2041 "Everybody?" 2042 2043 "Why, yes, everybody that's in love with each other. Do you remember 2044 what I wrote on the slate?" 2045 2046 "Ye--yes." 2047 2048 "What was it?" 2049 2050 "I sha'n't tell you." 2051 2052 "Shall I tell YOU?" 2053 2054 "Ye--yes--but some other time." 2055 2056 "No, now." 2057 2058 "No, not now--to-morrow." 2059 2060 "Oh, no, NOW. Please, Becky--I'll whisper it, I'll whisper it ever so 2061 easy." 2062 2063 Becky hesitating, Tom took silence for consent, and passed his arm 2064 about her waist and whispered the tale ever so softly, with his mouth 2065 close to her ear. And then he added: 2066 2067 "Now you whisper it to me--just the same." 2068 2069 She resisted, for a while, and then said: 2070 2071 "You turn your face away so you can't see, and then I will. But you 2072 mustn't ever tell anybody--WILL you, Tom? Now you won't, WILL you?" 2073 2074 "No, indeed, indeed I won't. Now, Becky." 2075 2076 He turned his face away. She bent timidly around till her breath 2077 stirred his curls and whispered, "I--love--you!" 2078 2079 Then she sprang away and ran around and around the desks and benches, 2080 with Tom after her, and took refuge in a corner at last, with her 2081 little white apron to her face. Tom clasped her about her neck and 2082 pleaded: 2083 2084 "Now, Becky, it's all done--all over but the kiss. Don't you be afraid 2085 of that--it ain't anything at all. Please, Becky." And he tugged at her 2086 apron and the hands. 2087 2088 By and by she gave up, and let her hands drop; her face, all glowing 2089 with the struggle, came up and submitted. Tom kissed the red lips and 2090 said: 2091 2092 "Now it's all done, Becky. And always after this, you know, you ain't 2093 ever to love anybody but me, and you ain't ever to marry anybody but 2094 me, ever never and forever. Will you?" 2095 2096 "No, I'll never love anybody but you, Tom, and I'll never marry 2097 anybody but you--and you ain't to ever marry anybody but me, either." 2098 2099 "Certainly. Of course. That's PART of it. And always coming to school 2100 or when we're going home, you're to walk with me, when there ain't 2101 anybody looking--and you choose me and I choose you at parties, because 2102 that's the way you do when you're engaged." 2103 2104 "It's so nice. I never heard of it before." 2105 2106 "Oh, it's ever so gay! Why, me and Amy Lawrence--" 2107 2108 The big eyes told Tom his blunder and he stopped, confused. 2109 2110 "Oh, Tom! Then I ain't the first you've ever been engaged to!" 2111 2112 The child began to cry. Tom said: 2113 2114 "Oh, don't cry, Becky, I don't care for her any more." 2115 2116 "Yes, you do, Tom--you know you do." 2117 2118 Tom tried to put his arm about her neck, but she pushed him away and 2119 turned her face to the wall, and went on crying. Tom tried again, with 2120 soothing words in his mouth, and was repulsed again. Then his pride was 2121 up, and he strode away and went outside. He stood about, restless and 2122 uneasy, for a while, glancing at the door, every now and then, hoping 2123 she would repent and come to find him. But she did not. Then he began 2124 to feel badly and fear that he was in the wrong. It was a hard struggle 2125 with him to make new advances, now, but he nerved himself to it and 2126 entered. She was still standing back there in the corner, sobbing, with 2127 her face to the wall. Tom's heart smote him. He went to her and stood a 2128 moment, not knowing exactly how to proceed. Then he said hesitatingly: 2129 2130 "Becky, I--I don't care for anybody but you." 2131 2132 No reply--but sobs. 2133 2134 "Becky"--pleadingly. "Becky, won't you say something?" 2135 2136 More sobs. 2137 2138 Tom got out his chiefest jewel, a brass knob from the top of an 2139 andiron, and passed it around her so that she could see it, and said: 2140 2141 "Please, Becky, won't you take it?" 2142 2143 She struck it to the floor. Then Tom marched out of the house and over 2144 the hills and far away, to return to school no more that day. Presently 2145 Becky began to suspect. She ran to the door; he was not in sight; she 2146 flew around to the play-yard; he was not there. Then she called: 2147 2148 "Tom! Come back, Tom!" 2149 2150 She listened intently, but there was no answer. She had no companions 2151 but silence and loneliness. So she sat down to cry again and upbraid 2152 herself; and by this time the scholars began to gather again, and she 2153 had to hide her griefs and still her broken heart and take up the cross 2154 of a long, dreary, aching afternoon, with none among the strangers 2155 about her to exchange sorrows with. 2156 2157 2158 2159 CHAPTER VIII 2160 2161 TOM dodged hither and thither through lanes until he was well out of 2162 the track of returning scholars, and then fell into a moody jog. He 2163 crossed a small "branch" two or three times, because of a prevailing 2164 juvenile superstition that to cross water baffled pursuit. Half an hour 2165 later he was disappearing behind the Douglas mansion on the summit of 2166 Cardiff Hill, and the schoolhouse was hardly distinguishable away off 2167 in the valley behind him. He entered a dense wood, picked his pathless 2168 way to the centre of it, and sat down on a mossy spot under a spreading 2169 oak. There was not even a zephyr stirring; the dead noonday heat had 2170 even stilled the songs of the birds; nature lay in a trance that was 2171 broken by no sound but the occasional far-off hammering of a 2172 woodpecker, and this seemed to render the pervading silence and sense 2173 of loneliness the more profound. The boy's soul was steeped in 2174 melancholy; his feelings were in happy accord with his surroundings. He 2175 sat long with his elbows on his knees and his chin in his hands, 2176 meditating. It seemed to him that life was but a trouble, at best, and 2177 he more than half envied Jimmy Hodges, so lately released; it must be 2178 very peaceful, he thought, to lie and slumber and dream forever and 2179 ever, with the wind whispering through the trees and caressing the 2180 grass and the flowers over the grave, and nothing to bother and grieve 2181 about, ever any more. If he only had a clean Sunday-school record he 2182 could be willing to go, and be done with it all. Now as to this girl. 2183 What had he done? Nothing. He had meant the best in the world, and been 2184 treated like a dog--like a very dog. She would be sorry some day--maybe 2185 when it was too late. Ah, if he could only die TEMPORARILY! 2186 2187 But the elastic heart of youth cannot be compressed into one 2188 constrained shape long at a time. Tom presently began to drift 2189 insensibly back into the concerns of this life again. What if he turned 2190 his back, now, and disappeared mysteriously? What if he went away--ever 2191 so far away, into unknown countries beyond the seas--and never came 2192 back any more! How would she feel then! The idea of being a clown 2193 recurred to him now, only to fill him with disgust. For frivolity and 2194 jokes and spotted tights were an offense, when they intruded themselves 2195 upon a spirit that was exalted into the vague august realm of the 2196 romantic. No, he would be a soldier, and return after long years, all 2197 war-worn and illustrious. No--better still, he would join the Indians, 2198 and hunt buffaloes and go on the warpath in the mountain ranges and the 2199 trackless great plains of the Far West, and away in the future come 2200 back a great chief, bristling with feathers, hideous with paint, and 2201 prance into Sunday-school, some drowsy summer morning, with a 2202 bloodcurdling war-whoop, and sear the eyeballs of all his companions 2203 with unappeasable envy. But no, there was something gaudier even than 2204 this. He would be a pirate! That was it! NOW his future lay plain 2205 before him, and glowing with unimaginable splendor. How his name would 2206 fill the world, and make people shudder! How gloriously he would go 2207 plowing the dancing seas, in his long, low, black-hulled racer, the 2208 Spirit of the Storm, with his grisly flag flying at the fore! And at 2209 the zenith of his fame, how he would suddenly appear at the old village 2210 and stalk into church, brown and weather-beaten, in his black velvet 2211 doublet and trunks, his great jack-boots, his crimson sash, his belt 2212 bristling with horse-pistols, his crime-rusted cutlass at his side, his 2213 slouch hat with waving plumes, his black flag unfurled, with the skull 2214 and crossbones on it, and hear with swelling ecstasy the whisperings, 2215 "It's Tom Sawyer the Pirate!--the Black Avenger of the Spanish Main!" 2216 2217 Yes, it was settled; his career was determined. He would run away from 2218 home and enter upon it. He would start the very next morning. Therefore 2219 he must now begin to get ready. He would collect his resources 2220 together. He went to a rotten log near at hand and began to dig under 2221 one end of it with his Barlow knife. He soon struck wood that sounded 2222 hollow. He put his hand there and uttered this incantation impressively: 2223 2224 "What hasn't come here, come! What's here, stay here!" 2225 2226 Then he scraped away the dirt, and exposed a pine shingle. He took it 2227 up and disclosed a shapely little treasure-house whose bottom and sides 2228 were of shingles. In it lay a marble. Tom's astonishment was boundless! 2229 He scratched his head with a perplexed air, and said: 2230 2231 "Well, that beats anything!" 2232 2233 Then he tossed the marble away pettishly, and stood cogitating. The 2234 truth was, that a superstition of his had failed, here, which he and 2235 all his comrades had always looked upon as infallible. If you buried a 2236 marble with certain necessary incantations, and left it alone a 2237 fortnight, and then opened the place with the incantation he had just 2238 used, you would find that all the marbles you had ever lost had 2239 gathered themselves together there, meantime, no matter how widely they 2240 had been separated. But now, this thing had actually and unquestionably 2241 failed. Tom's whole structure of faith was shaken to its foundations. 2242 He had many a time heard of this thing succeeding but never of its 2243 failing before. It did not occur to him that he had tried it several 2244 times before, himself, but could never find the hiding-places 2245 afterward. He puzzled over the matter some time, and finally decided 2246 that some witch had interfered and broken the charm. He thought he 2247 would satisfy himself on that point; so he searched around till he 2248 found a small sandy spot with a little funnel-shaped depression in it. 2249 He laid himself down and put his mouth close to this depression and 2250 called-- 2251 2252 "Doodle-bug, doodle-bug, tell me what I want to know! Doodle-bug, 2253 doodle-bug, tell me what I want to know!" 2254 2255 The sand began to work, and presently a small black bug appeared for a 2256 second and then darted under again in a fright. 2257 2258 "He dasn't tell! So it WAS a witch that done it. I just knowed it." 2259 2260 He well knew the futility of trying to contend against witches, so he 2261 gave up discouraged. But it occurred to him that he might as well have 2262 the marble he had just thrown away, and therefore he went and made a 2263 patient search for it. But he could not find it. Now he went back to 2264 his treasure-house and carefully placed himself just as he had been 2265 standing when he tossed the marble away; then he took another marble 2266 from his pocket and tossed it in the same way, saying: 2267 2268 "Brother, go find your brother!" 2269 2270 He watched where it stopped, and went there and looked. But it must 2271 have fallen short or gone too far; so he tried twice more. The last 2272 repetition was successful. The two marbles lay within a foot of each 2273 other. 2274 2275 Just here the blast of a toy tin trumpet came faintly down the green 2276 aisles of the forest. Tom flung off his jacket and trousers, turned a 2277 suspender into a belt, raked away some brush behind the rotten log, 2278 disclosing a rude bow and arrow, a lath sword and a tin trumpet, and in 2279 a moment had seized these things and bounded away, barelegged, with 2280 fluttering shirt. He presently halted under a great elm, blew an 2281 answering blast, and then began to tiptoe and look warily out, this way 2282 and that. He said cautiously--to an imaginary company: 2283 2284 "Hold, my merry men! Keep hid till I blow." 2285 2286 Now appeared Joe Harper, as airily clad and elaborately armed as Tom. 2287 Tom called: 2288 2289 "Hold! Who comes here into Sherwood Forest without my pass?" 2290 2291 "Guy of Guisborne wants no man's pass. Who art thou that--that--" 2292 2293 "Dares to hold such language," said Tom, prompting--for they talked 2294 "by the book," from memory. 2295 2296 "Who art thou that dares to hold such language?" 2297 2298 "I, indeed! I am Robin Hood, as thy caitiff carcase soon shall know." 2299 2300 "Then art thou indeed that famous outlaw? Right gladly will I dispute 2301 with thee the passes of the merry wood. Have at thee!" 2302 2303 They took their lath swords, dumped their other traps on the ground, 2304 struck a fencing attitude, foot to foot, and began a grave, careful 2305 combat, "two up and two down." Presently Tom said: 2306 2307 "Now, if you've got the hang, go it lively!" 2308 2309 So they "went it lively," panting and perspiring with the work. By and 2310 by Tom shouted: 2311 2312 "Fall! fall! Why don't you fall?" 2313 2314 "I sha'n't! Why don't you fall yourself? You're getting the worst of 2315 it." 2316 2317 "Why, that ain't anything. I can't fall; that ain't the way it is in 2318 the book. The book says, 'Then with one back-handed stroke he slew poor 2319 Guy of Guisborne.' You're to turn around and let me hit you in the 2320 back." 2321 2322 There was no getting around the authorities, so Joe turned, received 2323 the whack and fell. 2324 2325 "Now," said Joe, getting up, "you got to let me kill YOU. That's fair." 2326 2327 "Why, I can't do that, it ain't in the book." 2328 2329 "Well, it's blamed mean--that's all." 2330 2331 "Well, say, Joe, you can be Friar Tuck or Much the miller's son, and 2332 lam me with a quarter-staff; or I'll be the Sheriff of Nottingham and 2333 you be Robin Hood a little while and kill me." 2334 2335 This was satisfactory, and so these adventures were carried out. Then 2336 Tom became Robin Hood again, and was allowed by the treacherous nun to 2337 bleed his strength away through his neglected wound. And at last Joe, 2338 representing a whole tribe of weeping outlaws, dragged him sadly forth, 2339 gave his bow into his feeble hands, and Tom said, "Where this arrow 2340 falls, there bury poor Robin Hood under the greenwood tree." Then he 2341 shot the arrow and fell back and would have died, but he lit on a 2342 nettle and sprang up too gaily for a corpse. 2343 2344 The boys dressed themselves, hid their accoutrements, and went off 2345 grieving that there were no outlaws any more, and wondering what modern 2346 civilization could claim to have done to compensate for their loss. 2347 They said they would rather be outlaws a year in Sherwood Forest than 2348 President of the United States forever. 2349 2350 2351 2352 CHAPTER IX 2353 2354 AT half-past nine, that night, Tom and Sid were sent to bed, as usual. 2355 They said their prayers, and Sid was soon asleep. Tom lay awake and 2356 waited, in restless impatience. When it seemed to him that it must be 2357 nearly daylight, he heard the clock strike ten! This was despair. He 2358 would have tossed and fidgeted, as his nerves demanded, but he was 2359 afraid he might wake Sid. So he lay still, and stared up into the dark. 2360 Everything was dismally still. By and by, out of the stillness, little, 2361 scarcely perceptible noises began to emphasize themselves. The ticking 2362 of the clock began to bring itself into notice. Old beams began to 2363 crack mysteriously. The stairs creaked faintly. Evidently spirits were 2364 abroad. A measured, muffled snore issued from Aunt Polly's chamber. And 2365 now the tiresome chirping of a cricket that no human ingenuity could 2366 locate, began. Next the ghastly ticking of a deathwatch in the wall at 2367 the bed's head made Tom shudder--it meant that somebody's days were 2368 numbered. Then the howl of a far-off dog rose on the night air, and was 2369 answered by a fainter howl from a remoter distance. Tom was in an 2370 agony. At last he was satisfied that time had ceased and eternity 2371 begun; he began to doze, in spite of himself; the clock chimed eleven, 2372 but he did not hear it. And then there came, mingling with his 2373 half-formed dreams, a most melancholy caterwauling. The raising of a 2374 neighboring window disturbed him. A cry of "Scat! you devil!" and the 2375 crash of an empty bottle against the back of his aunt's woodshed 2376 brought him wide awake, and a single minute later he was dressed and 2377 out of the window and creeping along the roof of the "ell" on all 2378 fours. He "meow'd" with caution once or twice, as he went; then jumped 2379 to the roof of the woodshed and thence to the ground. Huckleberry Finn 2380 was there, with his dead cat. The boys moved off and disappeared in the 2381 gloom. At the end of half an hour they were wading through the tall 2382 grass of the graveyard. 2383 2384 It was a graveyard of the old-fashioned Western kind. It was on a 2385 hill, about a mile and a half from the village. It had a crazy board 2386 fence around it, which leaned inward in places, and outward the rest of 2387 the time, but stood upright nowhere. Grass and weeds grew rank over the 2388 whole cemetery. All the old graves were sunken in, there was not a 2389 tombstone on the place; round-topped, worm-eaten boards staggered over 2390 the graves, leaning for support and finding none. "Sacred to the memory 2391 of" So-and-So had been painted on them once, but it could no longer 2392 have been read, on the most of them, now, even if there had been light. 2393 2394 A faint wind moaned through the trees, and Tom feared it might be the 2395 spirits of the dead, complaining at being disturbed. The boys talked 2396 little, and only under their breath, for the time and the place and the 2397 pervading solemnity and silence oppressed their spirits. They found the 2398 sharp new heap they were seeking, and ensconced themselves within the 2399 protection of three great elms that grew in a bunch within a few feet 2400 of the grave. 2401 2402 Then they waited in silence for what seemed a long time. The hooting 2403 of a distant owl was all the sound that troubled the dead stillness. 2404 Tom's reflections grew oppressive. He must force some talk. So he said 2405 in a whisper: 2406 2407 "Hucky, do you believe the dead people like it for us to be here?" 2408 2409 Huckleberry whispered: 2410 2411 "I wisht I knowed. It's awful solemn like, AIN'T it?" 2412 2413 "I bet it is." 2414 2415 There was a considerable pause, while the boys canvassed this matter 2416 inwardly. Then Tom whispered: 2417 2418 "Say, Hucky--do you reckon Hoss Williams hears us talking?" 2419 2420 "O' course he does. Least his sperrit does." 2421 2422 Tom, after a pause: 2423 2424 "I wish I'd said Mister Williams. But I never meant any harm. 2425 Everybody calls him Hoss." 2426 2427 "A body can't be too partic'lar how they talk 'bout these-yer dead 2428 people, Tom." 2429 2430 This was a damper, and conversation died again. 2431 2432 Presently Tom seized his comrade's arm and said: 2433 2434 "Sh!" 2435 2436 "What is it, Tom?" And the two clung together with beating hearts. 2437 2438 "Sh! There 'tis again! Didn't you hear it?" 2439 2440 "I--" 2441 2442 "There! Now you hear it." 2443 2444 "Lord, Tom, they're coming! They're coming, sure. What'll we do?" 2445 2446 "I dono. Think they'll see us?" 2447 2448 "Oh, Tom, they can see in the dark, same as cats. I wisht I hadn't 2449 come." 2450 2451 "Oh, don't be afeard. I don't believe they'll bother us. We ain't 2452 doing any harm. If we keep perfectly still, maybe they won't notice us 2453 at all." 2454 2455 "I'll try to, Tom, but, Lord, I'm all of a shiver." 2456 2457 "Listen!" 2458 2459 The boys bent their heads together and scarcely breathed. A muffled 2460 sound of voices floated up from the far end of the graveyard. 2461 2462 "Look! See there!" whispered Tom. "What is it?" 2463 2464 "It's devil-fire. Oh, Tom, this is awful." 2465 2466 Some vague figures approached through the gloom, swinging an 2467 old-fashioned tin lantern that freckled the ground with innumerable 2468 little spangles of light. Presently Huckleberry whispered with a 2469 shudder: 2470 2471 "It's the devils sure enough. Three of 'em! Lordy, Tom, we're goners! 2472 Can you pray?" 2473 2474 "I'll try, but don't you be afeard. They ain't going to hurt us. 'Now 2475 I lay me down to sleep, I--'" 2476 2477 "Sh!" 2478 2479 "What is it, Huck?" 2480 2481 "They're HUMANS! One of 'em is, anyway. One of 'em's old Muff Potter's 2482 voice." 2483 2484 "No--'tain't so, is it?" 2485 2486 "I bet I know it. Don't you stir nor budge. He ain't sharp enough to 2487 notice us. Drunk, the same as usual, likely--blamed old rip!" 2488 2489 "All right, I'll keep still. Now they're stuck. Can't find it. Here 2490 they come again. Now they're hot. Cold again. Hot again. Red hot! 2491 They're p'inted right, this time. Say, Huck, I know another o' them 2492 voices; it's Injun Joe." 2493 2494 "That's so--that murderin' half-breed! I'd druther they was devils a 2495 dern sight. What kin they be up to?" 2496 2497 The whisper died wholly out, now, for the three men had reached the 2498 grave and stood within a few feet of the boys' hiding-place. 2499 2500 "Here it is," said the third voice; and the owner of it held the 2501 lantern up and revealed the face of young Doctor Robinson. 2502 2503 Potter and Injun Joe were carrying a handbarrow with a rope and a 2504 couple of shovels on it. They cast down their load and began to open 2505 the grave. The doctor put the lantern at the head of the grave and came 2506 and sat down with his back against one of the elm trees. He was so 2507 close the boys could have touched him. 2508 2509 "Hurry, men!" he said, in a low voice; "the moon might come out at any 2510 moment." 2511 2512 They growled a response and went on digging. For some time there was 2513 no noise but the grating sound of the spades discharging their freight 2514 of mould and gravel. It was very monotonous. Finally a spade struck 2515 upon the coffin with a dull woody accent, and within another minute or 2516 two the men had hoisted it out on the ground. They pried off the lid 2517 with their shovels, got out the body and dumped it rudely on the 2518 ground. The moon drifted from behind the clouds and exposed the pallid 2519 face. The barrow was got ready and the corpse placed on it, covered 2520 with a blanket, and bound to its place with the rope. Potter took out a 2521 large spring-knife and cut off the dangling end of the rope and then 2522 said: 2523 2524 "Now the cussed thing's ready, Sawbones, and you'll just out with 2525 another five, or here she stays." 2526 2527 "That's the talk!" said Injun Joe. 2528 2529 "Look here, what does this mean?" said the doctor. "You required your 2530 pay in advance, and I've paid you." 2531 2532 "Yes, and you done more than that," said Injun Joe, approaching the 2533 doctor, who was now standing. "Five years ago you drove me away from 2534 your father's kitchen one night, when I come to ask for something to 2535 eat, and you said I warn't there for any good; and when I swore I'd get 2536 even with you if it took a hundred years, your father had me jailed for 2537 a vagrant. Did you think I'd forget? The Injun blood ain't in me for 2538 nothing. And now I've GOT you, and you got to SETTLE, you know!" 2539 2540 He was threatening the doctor, with his fist in his face, by this 2541 time. The doctor struck out suddenly and stretched the ruffian on the 2542 ground. Potter dropped his knife, and exclaimed: 2543 2544 "Here, now, don't you hit my pard!" and the next moment he had 2545 grappled with the doctor and the two were struggling with might and 2546 main, trampling the grass and tearing the ground with their heels. 2547 Injun Joe sprang to his feet, his eyes flaming with passion, snatched 2548 up Potter's knife, and went creeping, catlike and stooping, round and 2549 round about the combatants, seeking an opportunity. All at once the 2550 doctor flung himself free, seized the heavy headboard of Williams' 2551 grave and felled Potter to the earth with it--and in the same instant 2552 the half-breed saw his chance and drove the knife to the hilt in the 2553 young man's breast. He reeled and fell partly upon Potter, flooding him 2554 with his blood, and in the same moment the clouds blotted out the 2555 dreadful spectacle and the two frightened boys went speeding away in 2556 the dark. 2557 2558 Presently, when the moon emerged again, Injun Joe was standing over 2559 the two forms, contemplating them. The doctor murmured inarticulately, 2560 gave a long gasp or two and was still. The half-breed muttered: 2561 2562 "THAT score is settled--damn you." 2563 2564 Then he robbed the body. After which he put the fatal knife in 2565 Potter's open right hand, and sat down on the dismantled coffin. Three 2566 --four--five minutes passed, and then Potter began to stir and moan. His 2567 hand closed upon the knife; he raised it, glanced at it, and let it 2568 fall, with a shudder. Then he sat up, pushing the body from him, and 2569 gazed at it, and then around him, confusedly. His eyes met Joe's. 2570 2571 "Lord, how is this, Joe?" he said. 2572 2573 "It's a dirty business," said Joe, without moving. 2574 2575 "What did you do it for?" 2576 2577 "I! I never done it!" 2578 2579 "Look here! That kind of talk won't wash." 2580 2581 Potter trembled and grew white. 2582 2583 "I thought I'd got sober. I'd no business to drink to-night. But it's 2584 in my head yet--worse'n when we started here. I'm all in a muddle; 2585 can't recollect anything of it, hardly. Tell me, Joe--HONEST, now, old 2586 feller--did I do it? Joe, I never meant to--'pon my soul and honor, I 2587 never meant to, Joe. Tell me how it was, Joe. Oh, it's awful--and him 2588 so young and promising." 2589 2590 "Why, you two was scuffling, and he fetched you one with the headboard 2591 and you fell flat; and then up you come, all reeling and staggering 2592 like, and snatched the knife and jammed it into him, just as he fetched 2593 you another awful clip--and here you've laid, as dead as a wedge til 2594 now." 2595 2596 "Oh, I didn't know what I was a-doing. I wish I may die this minute if 2597 I did. It was all on account of the whiskey and the excitement, I 2598 reckon. I never used a weepon in my life before, Joe. I've fought, but 2599 never with weepons. They'll all say that. Joe, don't tell! Say you 2600 won't tell, Joe--that's a good feller. I always liked you, Joe, and 2601 stood up for you, too. Don't you remember? You WON'T tell, WILL you, 2602 Joe?" And the poor creature dropped on his knees before the stolid 2603 murderer, and clasped his appealing hands. 2604 2605 "No, you've always been fair and square with me, Muff Potter, and I 2606 won't go back on you. There, now, that's as fair as a man can say." 2607 2608 "Oh, Joe, you're an angel. I'll bless you for this the longest day I 2609 live." And Potter began to cry. 2610 2611 "Come, now, that's enough of that. This ain't any time for blubbering. 2612 You be off yonder way and I'll go this. Move, now, and don't leave any 2613 tracks behind you." 2614 2615 Potter started on a trot that quickly increased to a run. The 2616 half-breed stood looking after him. He muttered: 2617 2618 "If he's as much stunned with the lick and fuddled with the rum as he 2619 had the look of being, he won't think of the knife till he's gone so 2620 far he'll be afraid to come back after it to such a place by himself 2621 --chicken-heart!" 2622 2623 Two or three minutes later the murdered man, the blanketed corpse, the 2624 lidless coffin, and the open grave were under no inspection but the 2625 moon's. The stillness was complete again, too. 2626 2627 2628 2629 CHAPTER X 2630 2631 THE two boys flew on and on, toward the village, speechless with 2632 horror. They glanced backward over their shoulders from time to time, 2633 apprehensively, as if they feared they might be followed. Every stump 2634 that started up in their path seemed a man and an enemy, and made them 2635 catch their breath; and as they sped by some outlying cottages that lay 2636 near the village, the barking of the aroused watch-dogs seemed to give 2637 wings to their feet. 2638 2639 "If we can only get to the old tannery before we break down!" 2640 whispered Tom, in short catches between breaths. "I can't stand it much 2641 longer." 2642 2643 Huckleberry's hard pantings were his only reply, and the boys fixed 2644 their eyes on the goal of their hopes and bent to their work to win it. 2645 They gained steadily on it, and at last, breast to breast, they burst 2646 through the open door and fell grateful and exhausted in the sheltering 2647 shadows beyond. By and by their pulses slowed down, and Tom whispered: 2648 2649 "Huckleberry, what do you reckon'll come of this?" 2650 2651 "If Doctor Robinson dies, I reckon hanging'll come of it." 2652 2653 "Do you though?" 2654 2655 "Why, I KNOW it, Tom." 2656 2657 Tom thought a while, then he said: 2658 2659 "Who'll tell? We?" 2660 2661 "What are you talking about? S'pose something happened and Injun Joe 2662 DIDN'T hang? Why, he'd kill us some time or other, just as dead sure as 2663 we're a laying here." 2664 2665 "That's just what I was thinking to myself, Huck." 2666 2667 "If anybody tells, let Muff Potter do it, if he's fool enough. He's 2668 generally drunk enough." 2669 2670 Tom said nothing--went on thinking. Presently he whispered: 2671 2672 "Huck, Muff Potter don't know it. How can he tell?" 2673 2674 "What's the reason he don't know it?" 2675 2676 "Because he'd just got that whack when Injun Joe done it. D'you reckon 2677 he could see anything? D'you reckon he knowed anything?" 2678 2679 "By hokey, that's so, Tom!" 2680 2681 "And besides, look-a-here--maybe that whack done for HIM!" 2682 2683 "No, 'taint likely, Tom. He had liquor in him; I could see that; and 2684 besides, he always has. Well, when pap's full, you might take and belt 2685 him over the head with a church and you couldn't phase him. He says so, 2686 his own self. So it's the same with Muff Potter, of course. But if a 2687 man was dead sober, I reckon maybe that whack might fetch him; I dono." 2688 2689 After another reflective silence, Tom said: 2690 2691 "Hucky, you sure you can keep mum?" 2692 2693 "Tom, we GOT to keep mum. You know that. That Injun devil wouldn't 2694 make any more of drownding us than a couple of cats, if we was to 2695 squeak 'bout this and they didn't hang him. Now, look-a-here, Tom, less 2696 take and swear to one another--that's what we got to do--swear to keep 2697 mum." 2698 2699 "I'm agreed. It's the best thing. Would you just hold hands and swear 2700 that we--" 2701 2702 "Oh no, that wouldn't do for this. That's good enough for little 2703 rubbishy common things--specially with gals, cuz THEY go back on you 2704 anyway, and blab if they get in a huff--but there orter be writing 2705 'bout a big thing like this. And blood." 2706 2707 Tom's whole being applauded this idea. It was deep, and dark, and 2708 awful; the hour, the circumstances, the surroundings, were in keeping 2709 with it. He picked up a clean pine shingle that lay in the moonlight, 2710 took a little fragment of "red keel" out of his pocket, got the moon on 2711 his work, and painfully scrawled these lines, emphasizing each slow 2712 down-stroke by clamping his tongue between his teeth, and letting up 2713 the pressure on the up-strokes. [See next page.] 2714 2715 "Huck Finn and 2716 Tom Sawyer swears 2717 they will keep mum 2718 about This and They 2719 wish They may Drop 2720 down dead in Their 2721 Tracks if They ever 2722 Tell and Rot." 2723 2724 Huckleberry was filled with admiration of Tom's facility in writing, 2725 and the sublimity of his language. He at once took a pin from his lapel 2726 and was going to prick his flesh, but Tom said: 2727 2728 "Hold on! Don't do that. A pin's brass. It might have verdigrease on 2729 it." 2730 2731 "What's verdigrease?" 2732 2733 "It's p'ison. That's what it is. You just swaller some of it once 2734 --you'll see." 2735 2736 So Tom unwound the thread from one of his needles, and each boy 2737 pricked the ball of his thumb and squeezed out a drop of blood. In 2738 time, after many squeezes, Tom managed to sign his initials, using the 2739 ball of his little finger for a pen. Then he showed Huckleberry how to 2740 make an H and an F, and the oath was complete. They buried the shingle 2741 close to the wall, with some dismal ceremonies and incantations, and 2742 the fetters that bound their tongues were considered to be locked and 2743 the key thrown away. 2744 2745 A figure crept stealthily through a break in the other end of the 2746 ruined building, now, but they did not notice it. 2747 2748 "Tom," whispered Huckleberry, "does this keep us from EVER telling 2749 --ALWAYS?" 2750 2751 "Of course it does. It don't make any difference WHAT happens, we got 2752 to keep mum. We'd drop down dead--don't YOU know that?" 2753 2754 "Yes, I reckon that's so." 2755 2756 They continued to whisper for some little time. Presently a dog set up 2757 a long, lugubrious howl just outside--within ten feet of them. The boys 2758 clasped each other suddenly, in an agony of fright. 2759 2760 "Which of us does he mean?" gasped Huckleberry. 2761 2762 "I dono--peep through the crack. Quick!" 2763 2764 "No, YOU, Tom!" 2765 2766 "I can't--I can't DO it, Huck!" 2767 2768 "Please, Tom. There 'tis again!" 2769 2770 "Oh, lordy, I'm thankful!" whispered Tom. "I know his voice. It's Bull 2771 Harbison." * 2772 2773 [* If Mr. Harbison owned a slave named Bull, Tom would have spoken of 2774 him as "Harbison's Bull," but a son or a dog of that name was "Bull 2775 Harbison."] 2776 2777 "Oh, that's good--I tell you, Tom, I was most scared to death; I'd a 2778 bet anything it was a STRAY dog." 2779 2780 The dog howled again. The boys' hearts sank once more. 2781 2782 "Oh, my! that ain't no Bull Harbison!" whispered Huckleberry. "DO, Tom!" 2783 2784 Tom, quaking with fear, yielded, and put his eye to the crack. His 2785 whisper was hardly audible when he said: 2786 2787 "Oh, Huck, IT S A STRAY DOG!" 2788 2789 "Quick, Tom, quick! Who does he mean?" 2790 2791 "Huck, he must mean us both--we're right together." 2792 2793 "Oh, Tom, I reckon we're goners. I reckon there ain't no mistake 'bout 2794 where I'LL go to. I been so wicked." 2795 2796 "Dad fetch it! This comes of playing hookey and doing everything a 2797 feller's told NOT to do. I might a been good, like Sid, if I'd a tried 2798 --but no, I wouldn't, of course. But if ever I get off this time, I lay 2799 I'll just WALLER in Sunday-schools!" And Tom began to snuffle a little. 2800 2801 "YOU bad!" and Huckleberry began to snuffle too. "Consound it, Tom 2802 Sawyer, you're just old pie, 'longside o' what I am. Oh, LORDY, lordy, 2803 lordy, I wisht I only had half your chance." 2804 2805 Tom choked off and whispered: 2806 2807 "Look, Hucky, look! He's got his BACK to us!" 2808 2809 Hucky looked, with joy in his heart. 2810 2811 "Well, he has, by jingoes! Did he before?" 2812 2813 "Yes, he did. But I, like a fool, never thought. Oh, this is bully, 2814 you know. NOW who can he mean?" 2815 2816 The howling stopped. Tom pricked up his ears. 2817 2818 "Sh! What's that?" he whispered. 2819 2820 "Sounds like--like hogs grunting. No--it's somebody snoring, Tom." 2821 2822 "That IS it! Where 'bouts is it, Huck?" 2823 2824 "I bleeve it's down at 'tother end. Sounds so, anyway. Pap used to 2825 sleep there, sometimes, 'long with the hogs, but laws bless you, he 2826 just lifts things when HE snores. Besides, I reckon he ain't ever 2827 coming back to this town any more." 2828 2829 The spirit of adventure rose in the boys' souls once more. 2830 2831 "Hucky, do you das't to go if I lead?" 2832 2833 "I don't like to, much. Tom, s'pose it's Injun Joe!" 2834 2835 Tom quailed. But presently the temptation rose up strong again and the 2836 boys agreed to try, with the understanding that they would take to 2837 their heels if the snoring stopped. So they went tiptoeing stealthily 2838 down, the one behind the other. When they had got to within five steps 2839 of the snorer, Tom stepped on a stick, and it broke with a sharp snap. 2840 The man moaned, writhed a little, and his face came into the moonlight. 2841 It was Muff Potter. The boys' hearts had stood still, and their hopes 2842 too, when the man moved, but their fears passed away now. They tiptoed 2843 out, through the broken weather-boarding, and stopped at a little 2844 distance to exchange a parting word. That long, lugubrious howl rose on 2845 the night air again! They turned and saw the strange dog standing 2846 within a few feet of where Potter was lying, and FACING Potter, with 2847 his nose pointing heavenward. 2848 2849 "Oh, geeminy, it's HIM!" exclaimed both boys, in a breath. 2850 2851 "Say, Tom--they say a stray dog come howling around Johnny Miller's 2852 house, 'bout midnight, as much as two weeks ago; and a whippoorwill 2853 come in and lit on the banisters and sung, the very same evening; and 2854 there ain't anybody dead there yet." 2855 2856 "Well, I know that. And suppose there ain't. Didn't Gracie Miller fall 2857 in the kitchen fire and burn herself terrible the very next Saturday?" 2858 2859 "Yes, but she ain't DEAD. And what's more, she's getting better, too." 2860 2861 "All right, you wait and see. She's a goner, just as dead sure as Muff 2862 Potter's a goner. That's what the niggers say, and they know all about 2863 these kind of things, Huck." 2864 2865 Then they separated, cogitating. When Tom crept in at his bedroom 2866 window the night was almost spent. He undressed with excessive caution, 2867 and fell asleep congratulating himself that nobody knew of his 2868 escapade. He was not aware that the gently-snoring Sid was awake, and 2869 had been so for an hour. 2870 2871 When Tom awoke, Sid was dressed and gone. There was a late look in the 2872 light, a late sense in the atmosphere. He was startled. Why had he not 2873 been called--persecuted till he was up, as usual? The thought filled 2874 him with bodings. Within five minutes he was dressed and down-stairs, 2875 feeling sore and drowsy. The family were still at table, but they had 2876 finished breakfast. There was no voice of rebuke; but there were 2877 averted eyes; there was a silence and an air of solemnity that struck a 2878 chill to the culprit's heart. He sat down and tried to seem gay, but it 2879 was up-hill work; it roused no smile, no response, and he lapsed into 2880 silence and let his heart sink down to the depths. 2881 2882 After breakfast his aunt took him aside, and Tom almost brightened in 2883 the hope that he was going to be flogged; but it was not so. His aunt 2884 wept over him and asked him how he could go and break her old heart so; 2885 and finally told him to go on, and ruin himself and bring her gray 2886 hairs with sorrow to the grave, for it was no use for her to try any 2887 more. This was worse than a thousand whippings, and Tom's heart was 2888 sorer now than his body. He cried, he pleaded for forgiveness, promised 2889 to reform over and over again, and then received his dismissal, feeling 2890 that he had won but an imperfect forgiveness and established but a 2891 feeble confidence. 2892 2893 He left the presence too miserable to even feel revengeful toward Sid; 2894 and so the latter's prompt retreat through the back gate was 2895 unnecessary. He moped to school gloomy and sad, and took his flogging, 2896 along with Joe Harper, for playing hookey the day before, with the air 2897 of one whose heart was busy with heavier woes and wholly dead to 2898 trifles. Then he betook himself to his seat, rested his elbows on his 2899 desk and his jaws in his hands, and stared at the wall with the stony 2900 stare of suffering that has reached the limit and can no further go. 2901 His elbow was pressing against some hard substance. After a long time 2902 he slowly and sadly changed his position, and took up this object with 2903 a sigh. It was in a paper. He unrolled it. A long, lingering, colossal 2904 sigh followed, and his heart broke. It was his brass andiron knob! 2905 2906 This final feather broke the camel's back. 2907 2908 2909 2910 CHAPTER XI 2911 2912 CLOSE upon the hour of noon the whole village was suddenly electrified 2913 with the ghastly news. No need of the as yet undreamed-of telegraph; 2914 the tale flew from man to man, from group to group, from house to 2915 house, with little less than telegraphic speed. Of course the 2916 schoolmaster gave holiday for that afternoon; the town would have 2917 thought strangely of him if he had not. 2918 2919 A gory knife had been found close to the murdered man, and it had been 2920 recognized by somebody as belonging to Muff Potter--so the story ran. 2921 And it was said that a belated citizen had come upon Potter washing 2922 himself in the "branch" about one or two o'clock in the morning, and 2923 that Potter had at once sneaked off--suspicious circumstances, 2924 especially the washing which was not a habit with Potter. It was also 2925 said that the town had been ransacked for this "murderer" (the public 2926 are not slow in the matter of sifting evidence and arriving at a 2927 verdict), but that he could not be found. Horsemen had departed down 2928 all the roads in every direction, and the Sheriff "was confident" that 2929 he would be captured before night. 2930 2931 All the town was drifting toward the graveyard. Tom's heartbreak 2932 vanished and he joined the procession, not because he would not a 2933 thousand times rather go anywhere else, but because an awful, 2934 unaccountable fascination drew him on. Arrived at the dreadful place, 2935 he wormed his small body through the crowd and saw the dismal 2936 spectacle. It seemed to him an age since he was there before. Somebody 2937 pinched his arm. He turned, and his eyes met Huckleberry's. Then both 2938 looked elsewhere at once, and wondered if anybody had noticed anything 2939 in their mutual glance. But everybody was talking, and intent upon the 2940 grisly spectacle before them. 2941 2942 "Poor fellow!" "Poor young fellow!" "This ought to be a lesson to 2943 grave robbers!" "Muff Potter'll hang for this if they catch him!" This 2944 was the drift of remark; and the minister said, "It was a judgment; His 2945 hand is here." 2946 2947 Now Tom shivered from head to heel; for his eye fell upon the stolid 2948 face of Injun Joe. At this moment the crowd began to sway and struggle, 2949 and voices shouted, "It's him! it's him! he's coming himself!" 2950 2951 "Who? Who?" from twenty voices. 2952 2953 "Muff Potter!" 2954 2955 "Hallo, he's stopped!--Look out, he's turning! Don't let him get away!" 2956 2957 People in the branches of the trees over Tom's head said he wasn't 2958 trying to get away--he only looked doubtful and perplexed. 2959 2960 "Infernal impudence!" said a bystander; "wanted to come and take a 2961 quiet look at his work, I reckon--didn't expect any company." 2962 2963 The crowd fell apart, now, and the Sheriff came through, 2964 ostentatiously leading Potter by the arm. The poor fellow's face was 2965 haggard, and his eyes showed the fear that was upon him. When he stood 2966 before the murdered man, he shook as with a palsy, and he put his face 2967 in his hands and burst into tears. 2968 2969 "I didn't do it, friends," he sobbed; "'pon my word and honor I never 2970 done it." 2971 2972 "Who's accused you?" shouted a voice. 2973 2974 This shot seemed to carry home. Potter lifted his face and looked 2975 around him with a pathetic hopelessness in his eyes. He saw Injun Joe, 2976 and exclaimed: 2977 2978 "Oh, Injun Joe, you promised me you'd never--" 2979 2980 "Is that your knife?" and it was thrust before him by the Sheriff. 2981 2982 Potter would have fallen if they had not caught him and eased him to 2983 the ground. Then he said: 2984 2985 "Something told me 't if I didn't come back and get--" He shuddered; 2986 then waved his nerveless hand with a vanquished gesture and said, "Tell 2987 'em, Joe, tell 'em--it ain't any use any more." 2988 2989 Then Huckleberry and Tom stood dumb and staring, and heard the 2990 stony-hearted liar reel off his serene statement, they expecting every 2991 moment that the clear sky would deliver God's lightnings upon his head, 2992 and wondering to see how long the stroke was delayed. And when he had 2993 finished and still stood alive and whole, their wavering impulse to 2994 break their oath and save the poor betrayed prisoner's life faded and 2995 vanished away, for plainly this miscreant had sold himself to Satan and 2996 it would be fatal to meddle with the property of such a power as that. 2997 2998 "Why didn't you leave? What did you want to come here for?" somebody 2999 said. 3000 3001 "I couldn't help it--I couldn't help it," Potter moaned. "I wanted to 3002 run away, but I couldn't seem to come anywhere but here." And he fell 3003 to sobbing again. 3004 3005 Injun Joe repeated his statement, just as calmly, a few minutes 3006 afterward on the inquest, under oath; and the boys, seeing that the 3007 lightnings were still withheld, were confirmed in their belief that Joe 3008 had sold himself to the devil. He was now become, to them, the most 3009 balefully interesting object they had ever looked upon, and they could 3010 not take their fascinated eyes from his face. 3011 3012 They inwardly resolved to watch him nights, when opportunity should 3013 offer, in the hope of getting a glimpse of his dread master. 3014 3015 Injun Joe helped to raise the body of the murdered man and put it in a 3016 wagon for removal; and it was whispered through the shuddering crowd 3017 that the wound bled a little! The boys thought that this happy 3018 circumstance would turn suspicion in the right direction; but they were 3019 disappointed, for more than one villager remarked: 3020 3021 "It was within three feet of Muff Potter when it done it." 3022 3023 Tom's fearful secret and gnawing conscience disturbed his sleep for as 3024 much as a week after this; and at breakfast one morning Sid said: 3025 3026 "Tom, you pitch around and talk in your sleep so much that you keep me 3027 awake half the time." 3028 3029 Tom blanched and dropped his eyes. 3030 3031 "It's a bad sign," said Aunt Polly, gravely. "What you got on your 3032 mind, Tom?" 3033 3034 "Nothing. Nothing 't I know of." But the boy's hand shook so that he 3035 spilled his coffee. 3036 3037 "And you do talk such stuff," Sid said. "Last night you said, 'It's 3038 blood, it's blood, that's what it is!' You said that over and over. And 3039 you said, 'Don't torment me so--I'll tell!' Tell WHAT? What is it 3040 you'll tell?" 3041 3042 Everything was swimming before Tom. There is no telling what might 3043 have happened, now, but luckily the concern passed out of Aunt Polly's 3044 face and she came to Tom's relief without knowing it. She said: 3045 3046 "Sho! It's that dreadful murder. I dream about it most every night 3047 myself. Sometimes I dream it's me that done it." 3048 3049 Mary said she had been affected much the same way. Sid seemed 3050 satisfied. Tom got out of the presence as quick as he plausibly could, 3051 and after that he complained of toothache for a week, and tied up his 3052 jaws every night. He never knew that Sid lay nightly watching, and 3053 frequently slipped the bandage free and then leaned on his elbow 3054 listening a good while at a time, and afterward slipped the bandage 3055 back to its place again. Tom's distress of mind wore off gradually and 3056 the toothache grew irksome and was discarded. If Sid really managed to 3057 make anything out of Tom's disjointed mutterings, he kept it to himself. 3058 3059 It seemed to Tom that his schoolmates never would get done holding 3060 inquests on dead cats, and thus keeping his trouble present to his 3061 mind. Sid noticed that Tom never was coroner at one of these inquiries, 3062 though it had been his habit to take the lead in all new enterprises; 3063 he noticed, too, that Tom never acted as a witness--and that was 3064 strange; and Sid did not overlook the fact that Tom even showed a 3065 marked aversion to these inquests, and always avoided them when he 3066 could. Sid marvelled, but said nothing. However, even inquests went out 3067 of vogue at last, and ceased to torture Tom's conscience. 3068 3069 Every day or two, during this time of sorrow, Tom watched his 3070 opportunity and went to the little grated jail-window and smuggled such 3071 small comforts through to the "murderer" as he could get hold of. The 3072 jail was a trifling little brick den that stood in a marsh at the edge 3073 of the village, and no guards were afforded for it; indeed, it was 3074 seldom occupied. These offerings greatly helped to ease Tom's 3075 conscience. 3076 3077 The villagers had a strong desire to tar-and-feather Injun Joe and 3078 ride him on a rail, for body-snatching, but so formidable was his 3079 character that nobody could be found who was willing to take the lead 3080 in the matter, so it was dropped. He had been careful to begin both of 3081 his inquest-statements with the fight, without confessing the 3082 grave-robbery that preceded it; therefore it was deemed wisest not 3083 to try the case in the courts at present. 3084 3085 3086 3087 CHAPTER XII 3088 3089 ONE of the reasons why Tom's mind had drifted away from its secret 3090 troubles was, that it had found a new and weighty matter to interest 3091 itself about. Becky Thatcher had stopped coming to school. Tom had 3092 struggled with his pride a few days, and tried to "whistle her down the 3093 wind," but failed. He began to find himself hanging around her father's 3094 house, nights, and feeling very miserable. She was ill. What if she 3095 should die! There was distraction in the thought. He no longer took an 3096 interest in war, nor even in piracy. The charm of life was gone; there 3097 was nothing but dreariness left. He put his hoop away, and his bat; 3098 there was no joy in them any more. His aunt was concerned. She began to 3099 try all manner of remedies on him. She was one of those people who are 3100 infatuated with patent medicines and all new-fangled methods of 3101 producing health or mending it. She was an inveterate experimenter in 3102 these things. When something fresh in this line came out she was in a 3103 fever, right away, to try it; not on herself, for she was never ailing, 3104 but on anybody else that came handy. She was a subscriber for all the 3105 "Health" periodicals and phrenological frauds; and the solemn ignorance 3106 they were inflated with was breath to her nostrils. All the "rot" they 3107 contained about ventilation, and how to go to bed, and how to get up, 3108 and what to eat, and what to drink, and how much exercise to take, and 3109 what frame of mind to keep one's self in, and what sort of clothing to 3110 wear, was all gospel to her, and she never observed that her 3111 health-journals of the current month customarily upset everything they 3112 had recommended the month before. She was as simple-hearted and honest 3113 as the day was long, and so she was an easy victim. She gathered 3114 together her quack periodicals and her quack medicines, and thus armed 3115 with death, went about on her pale horse, metaphorically speaking, with 3116 "hell following after." But she never suspected that she was not an 3117 angel of healing and the balm of Gilead in disguise, to the suffering 3118 neighbors. 3119 3120 The water treatment was new, now, and Tom's low condition was a 3121 windfall to her. She had him out at daylight every morning, stood him 3122 up in the woodshed and drowned him with a deluge of cold water; then 3123 she scrubbed him down with a towel like a file, and so brought him to; 3124 then she rolled him up in a wet sheet and put him away under blankets 3125 till she sweated his soul clean and "the yellow stains of it came 3126 through his pores"--as Tom said. 3127 3128 Yet notwithstanding all this, the boy grew more and more melancholy 3129 and pale and dejected. She added hot baths, sitz baths, shower baths, 3130 and plunges. The boy remained as dismal as a hearse. She began to 3131 assist the water with a slim oatmeal diet and blister-plasters. She 3132 calculated his capacity as she would a jug's, and filled him up every 3133 day with quack cure-alls. 3134 3135 Tom had become indifferent to persecution by this time. This phase 3136 filled the old lady's heart with consternation. This indifference must 3137 be broken up at any cost. Now she heard of Pain-killer for the first 3138 time. She ordered a lot at once. She tasted it and was filled with 3139 gratitude. It was simply fire in a liquid form. She dropped the water 3140 treatment and everything else, and pinned her faith to Pain-killer. She 3141 gave Tom a teaspoonful and watched with the deepest anxiety for the 3142 result. Her troubles were instantly at rest, her soul at peace again; 3143 for the "indifference" was broken up. The boy could not have shown a 3144 wilder, heartier interest, if she had built a fire under him. 3145 3146 Tom felt that it was time to wake up; this sort of life might be 3147 romantic enough, in his blighted condition, but it was getting to have 3148 too little sentiment and too much distracting variety about it. So he 3149 thought over various plans for relief, and finally hit pon that of 3150 professing to be fond of Pain-killer. He asked for it so often that he 3151 became a nuisance, and his aunt ended by telling him to help himself 3152 and quit bothering her. If it had been Sid, she would have had no 3153 misgivings to alloy her delight; but since it was Tom, she watched the 3154 bottle clandestinely. She found that the medicine did really diminish, 3155 but it did not occur to her that the boy was mending the health of a 3156 crack in the sitting-room floor with it. 3157 3158 One day Tom was in the act of dosing the crack when his aunt's yellow 3159 cat came along, purring, eying the teaspoon avariciously, and begging 3160 for a taste. Tom said: 3161 3162 "Don't ask for it unless you want it, Peter." 3163 3164 But Peter signified that he did want it. 3165 3166 "You better make sure." 3167 3168 Peter was sure. 3169 3170 "Now you've asked for it, and I'll give it to you, because there ain't 3171 anything mean about me; but if you find you don't like it, you mustn't 3172 blame anybody but your own self." 3173 3174 Peter was agreeable. So Tom pried his mouth open and poured down the 3175 Pain-killer. Peter sprang a couple of yards in the air, and then 3176 delivered a war-whoop and set off round and round the room, banging 3177 against furniture, upsetting flower-pots, and making general havoc. 3178 Next he rose on his hind feet and pranced around, in a frenzy of 3179 enjoyment, with his head over his shoulder and his voice proclaiming 3180 his unappeasable happiness. Then he went tearing around the house again 3181 spreading chaos and destruction in his path. Aunt Polly entered in time 3182 to see him throw a few double summersets, deliver a final mighty 3183 hurrah, and sail through the open window, carrying the rest of the 3184 flower-pots with him. The old lady stood petrified with astonishment, 3185 peering over her glasses; Tom lay on the floor expiring with laughter. 3186 3187 "Tom, what on earth ails that cat?" 3188 3189 "I don't know, aunt," gasped the boy. 3190 3191 "Why, I never see anything like it. What did make him act so?" 3192 3193 "Deed I don't know, Aunt Polly; cats always act so when they're having 3194 a good time." 3195 3196 "They do, do they?" There was something in the tone that made Tom 3197 apprehensive. 3198 3199 "Yes'm. That is, I believe they do." 3200 3201 "You DO?" 3202 3203 "Yes'm." 3204 3205 The old lady was bending down, Tom watching, with interest emphasized 3206 by anxiety. Too late he divined her "drift." The handle of the telltale 3207 teaspoon was visible under the bed-valance. Aunt Polly took it, held it 3208 up. Tom winced, and dropped his eyes. Aunt Polly raised him by the 3209 usual handle--his ear--and cracked his head soundly with her thimble. 3210 3211 "Now, sir, what did you want to treat that poor dumb beast so, for?" 3212 3213 "I done it out of pity for him--because he hadn't any aunt." 3214 3215 "Hadn't any aunt!--you numskull. What has that got to do with it?" 3216 3217 "Heaps. Because if he'd had one she'd a burnt him out herself! She'd a 3218 roasted his bowels out of him 'thout any more feeling than if he was a 3219 human!" 3220 3221 Aunt Polly felt a sudden pang of remorse. This was putting the thing 3222 in a new light; what was cruelty to a cat MIGHT be cruelty to a boy, 3223 too. She began to soften; she felt sorry. Her eyes watered a little, 3224 and she put her hand on Tom's head and said gently: 3225 3226 "I was meaning for the best, Tom. And, Tom, it DID do you good." 3227 3228 Tom looked up in her face with just a perceptible twinkle peeping 3229 through his gravity. 3230 3231 "I know you was meaning for the best, aunty, and so was I with Peter. 3232 It done HIM good, too. I never see him get around so since--" 3233 3234 "Oh, go 'long with you, Tom, before you aggravate me again. And you 3235 try and see if you can't be a good boy, for once, and you needn't take 3236 any more medicine." 3237 3238 Tom reached school ahead of time. It was noticed that this strange 3239 thing had been occurring every day latterly. And now, as usual of late, 3240 he hung about the gate of the schoolyard instead of playing with his 3241 comrades. He was sick, he said, and he looked it. He tried to seem to 3242 be looking everywhere but whither he really was looking--down the road. 3243 Presently Jeff Thatcher hove in sight, and Tom's face lighted; he gazed 3244 a moment, and then turned sorrowfully away. When Jeff arrived, Tom 3245 accosted him; and "led up" warily to opportunities for remark about 3246 Becky, but the giddy lad never could see the bait. Tom watched and 3247 watched, hoping whenever a frisking frock came in sight, and hating the 3248 owner of it as soon as he saw she was not the right one. At last frocks 3249 ceased to appear, and he dropped hopelessly into the dumps; he entered 3250 the empty schoolhouse and sat down to suffer. Then one more frock 3251 passed in at the gate, and Tom's heart gave a great bound. The next 3252 instant he was out, and "going on" like an Indian; yelling, laughing, 3253 chasing boys, jumping over the fence at risk of life and limb, throwing 3254 handsprings, standing on his head--doing all the heroic things he could 3255 conceive of, and keeping a furtive eye out, all the while, to see if 3256 Becky Thatcher was noticing. But she seemed to be unconscious of it 3257 all; she never looked. Could it be possible that she was not aware that 3258 he was there? He carried his exploits to her immediate vicinity; came 3259 war-whooping around, snatched a boy's cap, hurled it to the roof of the 3260 schoolhouse, broke through a group of boys, tumbling them in every 3261 direction, and fell sprawling, himself, under Becky's nose, almost 3262 upsetting her--and she turned, with her nose in the air, and he heard 3263 her say: "Mf! some people think they're mighty smart--always showing 3264 off!" 3265 3266 Tom's cheeks burned. He gathered himself up and sneaked off, crushed 3267 and crestfallen. 3268 3269 3270 3271 CHAPTER XIII 3272 3273 TOM'S mind was made up now. He was gloomy and desperate. He was a 3274 forsaken, friendless boy, he said; nobody loved him; when they found 3275 out what they had driven him to, perhaps they would be sorry; he had 3276 tried to do right and get along, but they would not let him; since 3277 nothing would do them but to be rid of him, let it be so; and let them 3278 blame HIM for the consequences--why shouldn't they? What right had the 3279 friendless to complain? Yes, they had forced him to it at last: he 3280 would lead a life of crime. There was no choice. 3281 3282 By this time he was far down Meadow Lane, and the bell for school to 3283 "take up" tinkled faintly upon his ear. He sobbed, now, to think he 3284 should never, never hear that old familiar sound any more--it was very 3285 hard, but it was forced on him; since he was driven out into the cold 3286 world, he must submit--but he forgave them. Then the sobs came thick 3287 and fast. 3288 3289 Just at this point he met his soul's sworn comrade, Joe Harper 3290 --hard-eyed, and with evidently a great and dismal purpose in his heart. 3291 Plainly here were "two souls with but a single thought." Tom, wiping 3292 his eyes with his sleeve, began to blubber out something about a 3293 resolution to escape from hard usage and lack of sympathy at home by 3294 roaming abroad into the great world never to return; and ended by 3295 hoping that Joe would not forget him. 3296 3297 But it transpired that this was a request which Joe had just been 3298 going to make of Tom, and had come to hunt him up for that purpose. His 3299 mother had whipped him for drinking some cream which he had never 3300 tasted and knew nothing about; it was plain that she was tired of him 3301 and wished him to go; if she felt that way, there was nothing for him 3302 to do but succumb; he hoped she would be happy, and never regret having 3303 driven her poor boy out into the unfeeling world to suffer and die. 3304 3305 As the two boys walked sorrowing along, they made a new compact to 3306 stand by each other and be brothers and never separate till death 3307 relieved them of their troubles. Then they began to lay their plans. 3308 Joe was for being a hermit, and living on crusts in a remote cave, and 3309 dying, some time, of cold and want and grief; but after listening to 3310 Tom, he conceded that there were some conspicuous advantages about a 3311 life of crime, and so he consented to be a pirate. 3312 3313 Three miles below St. Petersburg, at a point where the Mississippi 3314 River was a trifle over a mile wide, there was a long, narrow, wooded 3315 island, with a shallow bar at the head of it, and this offered well as 3316 a rendezvous. It was not inhabited; it lay far over toward the further 3317 shore, abreast a dense and almost wholly unpeopled forest. So Jackson's 3318 Island was chosen. Who were to be the subjects of their piracies was a 3319 matter that did not occur to them. Then they hunted up Huckleberry 3320 Finn, and he joined them promptly, for all careers were one to him; he 3321 was indifferent. They presently separated to meet at a lonely spot on 3322 the river-bank two miles above the village at the favorite hour--which 3323 was midnight. There was a small log raft there which they meant to 3324 capture. Each would bring hooks and lines, and such provision as he 3325 could steal in the most dark and mysterious way--as became outlaws. And 3326 before the afternoon was done, they had all managed to enjoy the sweet 3327 glory of spreading the fact that pretty soon the town would "hear 3328 something." All who got this vague hint were cautioned to "be mum and 3329 wait." 3330 3331 About midnight Tom arrived with a boiled ham and a few trifles, 3332 and stopped in a dense undergrowth on a small bluff overlooking the 3333 meeting-place. It was starlight, and very still. The mighty river lay 3334 like an ocean at rest. Tom listened a moment, but no sound disturbed the 3335 quiet. Then he gave a low, distinct whistle. It was answered from under 3336 the bluff. Tom whistled twice more; these signals were answered in the 3337 same way. Then a guarded voice said: 3338 3339 "Who goes there?" 3340 3341 "Tom Sawyer, the Black Avenger of the Spanish Main. Name your names." 3342 3343 "Huck Finn the Red-Handed, and Joe Harper the Terror of the Seas." Tom 3344 had furnished these titles, from his favorite literature. 3345 3346 "'Tis well. Give the countersign." 3347 3348 Two hoarse whispers delivered the same awful word simultaneously to 3349 the brooding night: 3350 3351 "BLOOD!" 3352 3353 Then Tom tumbled his ham over the bluff and let himself down after it, 3354 tearing both skin and clothes to some extent in the effort. There was 3355 an easy, comfortable path along the shore under the bluff, but it 3356 lacked the advantages of difficulty and danger so valued by a pirate. 3357 3358 The Terror of the Seas had brought a side of bacon, and had about worn 3359 himself out with getting it there. Finn the Red-Handed had stolen a 3360 skillet and a quantity of half-cured leaf tobacco, and had also brought 3361 a few corn-cobs to make pipes with. But none of the pirates smoked or 3362 "chewed" but himself. The Black Avenger of the Spanish Main said it 3363 would never do to start without some fire. That was a wise thought; 3364 matches were hardly known there in that day. They saw a fire 3365 smouldering upon a great raft a hundred yards above, and they went 3366 stealthily thither and helped themselves to a chunk. They made an 3367 imposing adventure of it, saying, "Hist!" every now and then, and 3368 suddenly halting with finger on lip; moving with hands on imaginary 3369 dagger-hilts; and giving orders in dismal whispers that if "the foe" 3370 stirred, to "let him have it to the hilt," because "dead men tell no 3371 tales." They knew well enough that the raftsmen were all down at the 3372 village laying in stores or having a spree, but still that was no 3373 excuse for their conducting this thing in an unpiratical way. 3374 3375 They shoved off, presently, Tom in command, Huck at the after oar and 3376 Joe at the forward. Tom stood amidships, gloomy-browed, and with folded 3377 arms, and gave his orders in a low, stern whisper: 3378 3379 "Luff, and bring her to the wind!" 3380 3381 "Aye-aye, sir!" 3382 3383 "Steady, steady-y-y-y!" 3384 3385 "Steady it is, sir!" 3386 3387 "Let her go off a point!" 3388 3389 "Point it is, sir!" 3390 3391 As the boys steadily and monotonously drove the raft toward mid-stream 3392 it was no doubt understood that these orders were given only for 3393 "style," and were not intended to mean anything in particular. 3394 3395 "What sail's she carrying?" 3396 3397 "Courses, tops'ls, and flying-jib, sir." 3398 3399 "Send the r'yals up! Lay out aloft, there, half a dozen of ye 3400 --foretopmaststuns'l! Lively, now!" 3401 3402 "Aye-aye, sir!" 3403 3404 "Shake out that maintogalans'l! Sheets and braces! NOW my hearties!" 3405 3406 "Aye-aye, sir!" 3407 3408 "Hellum-a-lee--hard a port! Stand by to meet her when she comes! Port, 3409 port! NOW, men! With a will! Stead-y-y-y!" 3410 3411 "Steady it is, sir!" 3412 3413 The raft drew beyond the middle of the river; the boys pointed her 3414 head right, and then lay on their oars. The river was not high, so 3415 there was not more than a two or three mile current. Hardly a word was 3416 said during the next three-quarters of an hour. Now the raft was 3417 passing before the distant town. Two or three glimmering lights showed 3418 where it lay, peacefully sleeping, beyond the vague vast sweep of 3419 star-gemmed water, unconscious of the tremendous event that was happening. 3420 The Black Avenger stood still with folded arms, "looking his last" upon 3421 the scene of his former joys and his later sufferings, and wishing 3422 "she" could see him now, abroad on the wild sea, facing peril and death 3423 with dauntless heart, going to his doom with a grim smile on his lips. 3424 It was but a small strain on his imagination to remove Jackson's Island 3425 beyond eyeshot of the village, and so he "looked his last" with a 3426 broken and satisfied heart. The other pirates were looking their last, 3427 too; and they all looked so long that they came near letting the 3428 current drift them out of the range of the island. But they discovered 3429 the danger in time, and made shift to avert it. About two o'clock in 3430 the morning the raft grounded on the bar two hundred yards above the 3431 head of the island, and they waded back and forth until they had landed 3432 their freight. Part of the little raft's belongings consisted of an old 3433 sail, and this they spread over a nook in the bushes for a tent to 3434 shelter their provisions; but they themselves would sleep in the open 3435 air in good weather, as became outlaws. 3436 3437 They built a fire against the side of a great log twenty or thirty 3438 steps within the sombre depths of the forest, and then cooked some 3439 bacon in the frying-pan for supper, and used up half of the corn "pone" 3440 stock they had brought. It seemed glorious sport to be feasting in that 3441 wild, free way in the virgin forest of an unexplored and uninhabited 3442 island, far from the haunts of men, and they said they never would 3443 return to civilization. The climbing fire lit up their faces and threw 3444 its ruddy glare upon the pillared tree-trunks of their forest temple, 3445 and upon the varnished foliage and festooning vines. 3446 3447 When the last crisp slice of bacon was gone, and the last allowance of 3448 corn pone devoured, the boys stretched themselves out on the grass, 3449 filled with contentment. They could have found a cooler place, but they 3450 would not deny themselves such a romantic feature as the roasting 3451 camp-fire. 3452 3453 "AIN'T it gay?" said Joe. 3454 3455 "It's NUTS!" said Tom. "What would the boys say if they could see us?" 3456 3457 "Say? Well, they'd just die to be here--hey, Hucky!" 3458 3459 "I reckon so," said Huckleberry; "anyways, I'm suited. I don't want 3460 nothing better'n this. I don't ever get enough to eat, gen'ally--and 3461 here they can't come and pick at a feller and bullyrag him so." 3462 3463 "It's just the life for me," said Tom. "You don't have to get up, 3464 mornings, and you don't have to go to school, and wash, and all that 3465 blame foolishness. You see a pirate don't have to do ANYTHING, Joe, 3466 when he's ashore, but a hermit HE has to be praying considerable, and 3467 then he don't have any fun, anyway, all by himself that way." 3468 3469 "Oh yes, that's so," said Joe, "but I hadn't thought much about it, 3470 you know. I'd a good deal rather be a pirate, now that I've tried it." 3471 3472 "You see," said Tom, "people don't go much on hermits, nowadays, like 3473 they used to in old times, but a pirate's always respected. And a 3474 hermit's got to sleep on the hardest place he can find, and put 3475 sackcloth and ashes on his head, and stand out in the rain, and--" 3476 3477 "What does he put sackcloth and ashes on his head for?" inquired Huck. 3478 3479 "I dono. But they've GOT to do it. Hermits always do. You'd have to do 3480 that if you was a hermit." 3481 3482 "Dern'd if I would," said Huck. 3483 3484 "Well, what would you do?" 3485 3486 "I dono. But I wouldn't do that." 3487 3488 "Why, Huck, you'd HAVE to. How'd you get around it?" 3489 3490 "Why, I just wouldn't stand it. I'd run away." 3491 3492 "Run away! Well, you WOULD be a nice old slouch of a hermit. You'd be 3493 a disgrace." 3494 3495 The Red-Handed made no response, being better employed. He had 3496 finished gouging out a cob, and now he fitted a weed stem to it, loaded 3497 it with tobacco, and was pressing a coal to the charge and blowing a 3498 cloud of fragrant smoke--he was in the full bloom of luxurious 3499 contentment. The other pirates envied him this majestic vice, and 3500 secretly resolved to acquire it shortly. Presently Huck said: 3501 3502 "What does pirates have to do?" 3503 3504 Tom said: 3505 3506 "Oh, they have just a bully time--take ships and burn them, and get 3507 the money and bury it in awful places in their island where there's 3508 ghosts and things to watch it, and kill everybody in the ships--make 3509 'em walk a plank." 3510 3511 "And they carry the women to the island," said Joe; "they don't kill 3512 the women." 3513 3514 "No," assented Tom, "they don't kill the women--they're too noble. And 3515 the women's always beautiful, too. 3516 3517 "And don't they wear the bulliest clothes! Oh no! All gold and silver 3518 and di'monds," said Joe, with enthusiasm. 3519 3520 "Who?" said Huck. 3521 3522 "Why, the pirates." 3523 3524 Huck scanned his own clothing forlornly. 3525 3526 "I reckon I ain't dressed fitten for a pirate," said he, with a 3527 regretful pathos in his voice; "but I ain't got none but these." 3528 3529 But the other boys told him the fine clothes would come fast enough, 3530 after they should have begun their adventures. They made him understand 3531 that his poor rags would do to begin with, though it was customary for 3532 wealthy pirates to start with a proper wardrobe. 3533 3534 Gradually their talk died out and drowsiness began to steal upon the 3535 eyelids of the little waifs. The pipe dropped from the fingers of the 3536 Red-Handed, and he slept the sleep of the conscience-free and the 3537 weary. The Terror of the Seas and the Black Avenger of the Spanish Main 3538 had more difficulty in getting to sleep. They said their prayers 3539 inwardly, and lying down, since there was nobody there with authority 3540 to make them kneel and recite aloud; in truth, they had a mind not to 3541 say them at all, but they were afraid to proceed to such lengths as 3542 that, lest they might call down a sudden and special thunderbolt from 3543 heaven. Then at once they reached and hovered upon the imminent verge 3544 of sleep--but an intruder came, now, that would not "down." It was 3545 conscience. They began to feel a vague fear that they had been doing 3546 wrong to run away; and next they thought of the stolen meat, and then 3547 the real torture came. They tried to argue it away by reminding 3548 conscience that they had purloined sweetmeats and apples scores of 3549 times; but conscience was not to be appeased by such thin 3550 plausibilities; it seemed to them, in the end, that there was no 3551 getting around the stubborn fact that taking sweetmeats was only 3552 "hooking," while taking bacon and hams and such valuables was plain 3553 simple stealing--and there was a command against that in the Bible. So 3554 they inwardly resolved that so long as they remained in the business, 3555 their piracies should not again be sullied with the crime of stealing. 3556 Then conscience granted a truce, and these curiously inconsistent 3557 pirates fell peacefully to sleep. 3558 3559 3560 3561 CHAPTER XIV 3562 3563 WHEN Tom awoke in the morning, he wondered where he was. He sat up and 3564 rubbed his eyes and looked around. Then he comprehended. It was the 3565 cool gray dawn, and there was a delicious sense of repose and peace in 3566 the deep pervading calm and silence of the woods. Not a leaf stirred; 3567 not a sound obtruded upon great Nature's meditation. Beaded dewdrops 3568 stood upon the leaves and grasses. A white layer of ashes covered the 3569 fire, and a thin blue breath of smoke rose straight into the air. Joe 3570 and Huck still slept. 3571 3572 Now, far away in the woods a bird called; another answered; presently 3573 the hammering of a woodpecker was heard. Gradually the cool dim gray of 3574 the morning whitened, and as gradually sounds multiplied and life 3575 manifested itself. The marvel of Nature shaking off sleep and going to 3576 work unfolded itself to the musing boy. A little green worm came 3577 crawling over a dewy leaf, lifting two-thirds of his body into the air 3578 from time to time and "sniffing around," then proceeding again--for he 3579 was measuring, Tom said; and when the worm approached him, of its own 3580 accord, he sat as still as a stone, with his hopes rising and falling, 3581 by turns, as the creature still came toward him or seemed inclined to 3582 go elsewhere; and when at last it considered a painful moment with its 3583 curved body in the air and then came decisively down upon Tom's leg and 3584 began a journey over him, his whole heart was glad--for that meant that 3585 he was going to have a new suit of clothes--without the shadow of a 3586 doubt a gaudy piratical uniform. Now a procession of ants appeared, 3587 from nowhere in particular, and went about their labors; one struggled 3588 manfully by with a dead spider five times as big as itself in its arms, 3589 and lugged it straight up a tree-trunk. A brown spotted lady-bug 3590 climbed the dizzy height of a grass blade, and Tom bent down close to 3591 it and said, "Lady-bug, lady-bug, fly away home, your house is on fire, 3592 your children's alone," and she took wing and went off to see about it 3593 --which did not surprise the boy, for he knew of old that this insect was 3594 credulous about conflagrations, and he had practised upon its 3595 simplicity more than once. A tumblebug came next, heaving sturdily at 3596 its ball, and Tom touched the creature, to see it shut its legs against 3597 its body and pretend to be dead. The birds were fairly rioting by this 3598 time. A catbird, the Northern mocker, lit in a tree over Tom's head, 3599 and trilled out her imitations of her neighbors in a rapture of 3600 enjoyment; then a shrill jay swept down, a flash of blue flame, and 3601 stopped on a twig almost within the boy's reach, cocked his head to one 3602 side and eyed the strangers with a consuming curiosity; a gray squirrel 3603 and a big fellow of the "fox" kind came skurrying along, sitting up at 3604 intervals to inspect and chatter at the boys, for the wild things had 3605 probably never seen a human being before and scarcely knew whether to 3606 be afraid or not. All Nature was wide awake and stirring, now; long 3607 lances of sunlight pierced down through the dense foliage far and near, 3608 and a few butterflies came fluttering upon the scene. 3609 3610 Tom stirred up the other pirates and they all clattered away with a 3611 shout, and in a minute or two were stripped and chasing after and 3612 tumbling over each other in the shallow limpid water of the white 3613 sandbar. They felt no longing for the little village sleeping in the 3614 distance beyond the majestic waste of water. A vagrant current or a 3615 slight rise in the river had carried off their raft, but this only 3616 gratified them, since its going was something like burning the bridge 3617 between them and civilization. 3618 3619 They came back to camp wonderfully refreshed, glad-hearted, and 3620 ravenous; and they soon had the camp-fire blazing up again. Huck found 3621 a spring of clear cold water close by, and the boys made cups of broad 3622 oak or hickory leaves, and felt that water, sweetened with such a 3623 wildwood charm as that, would be a good enough substitute for coffee. 3624 While Joe was slicing bacon for breakfast, Tom and Huck asked him to 3625 hold on a minute; they stepped to a promising nook in the river-bank 3626 and threw in their lines; almost immediately they had reward. Joe had 3627 not had time to get impatient before they were back again with some 3628 handsome bass, a couple of sun-perch and a small catfish--provisions 3629 enough for quite a family. They fried the fish with the bacon, and were 3630 astonished; for no fish had ever seemed so delicious before. They did 3631 not know that the quicker a fresh-water fish is on the fire after he is 3632 caught the better he is; and they reflected little upon what a sauce 3633 open-air sleeping, open-air exercise, bathing, and a large ingredient 3634 of hunger make, too. 3635 3636 They lay around in the shade, after breakfast, while Huck had a smoke, 3637 and then went off through the woods on an exploring expedition. They 3638 tramped gayly along, over decaying logs, through tangled underbrush, 3639 among solemn monarchs of the forest, hung from their crowns to the 3640 ground with a drooping regalia of grape-vines. Now and then they came 3641 upon snug nooks carpeted with grass and jeweled with flowers. 3642 3643 They found plenty of things to be delighted with, but nothing to be 3644 astonished at. They discovered that the island was about three miles 3645 long and a quarter of a mile wide, and that the shore it lay closest to 3646 was only separated from it by a narrow channel hardly two hundred yards 3647 wide. They took a swim about every hour, so it was close upon the 3648 middle of the afternoon when they got back to camp. They were too 3649 hungry to stop to fish, but they fared sumptuously upon cold ham, and 3650 then threw themselves down in the shade to talk. But the talk soon 3651 began to drag, and then died. The stillness, the solemnity that brooded 3652 in the woods, and the sense of loneliness, began to tell upon the 3653 spirits of the boys. They fell to thinking. A sort of undefined longing 3654 crept upon them. This took dim shape, presently--it was budding 3655 homesickness. Even Finn the Red-Handed was dreaming of his doorsteps 3656 and empty hogsheads. But they were all ashamed of their weakness, and 3657 none was brave enough to speak his thought. 3658 3659 For some time, now, the boys had been dully conscious of a peculiar 3660 sound in the distance, just as one sometimes is of the ticking of a 3661 clock which he takes no distinct note of. But now this mysterious sound 3662 became more pronounced, and forced a recognition. The boys started, 3663 glanced at each other, and then each assumed a listening attitude. 3664 There was a long silence, profound and unbroken; then a deep, sullen 3665 boom came floating down out of the distance. 3666 3667 "What is it!" exclaimed Joe, under his breath. 3668 3669 "I wonder," said Tom in a whisper. 3670 3671 "'Tain't thunder," said Huckleberry, in an awed tone, "becuz thunder--" 3672 3673 "Hark!" said Tom. "Listen--don't talk." 3674 3675 They waited a time that seemed an age, and then the same muffled boom 3676 troubled the solemn hush. 3677 3678 "Let's go and see." 3679 3680 They sprang to their feet and hurried to the shore toward the town. 3681 They parted the bushes on the bank and peered out over the water. The 3682 little steam ferryboat was about a mile below the village, drifting 3683 with the current. Her broad deck seemed crowded with people. There were 3684 a great many skiffs rowing about or floating with the stream in the 3685 neighborhood of the ferryboat, but the boys could not determine what 3686 the men in them were doing. Presently a great jet of white smoke burst 3687 from the ferryboat's side, and as it expanded and rose in a lazy cloud, 3688 that same dull throb of sound was borne to the listeners again. 3689 3690 "I know now!" exclaimed Tom; "somebody's drownded!" 3691 3692 "That's it!" said Huck; "they done that last summer, when Bill Turner 3693 got drownded; they shoot a cannon over the water, and that makes him 3694 come up to the top. Yes, and they take loaves of bread and put 3695 quicksilver in 'em and set 'em afloat, and wherever there's anybody 3696 that's drownded, they'll float right there and stop." 3697 3698 "Yes, I've heard about that," said Joe. "I wonder what makes the bread 3699 do that." 3700 3701 "Oh, it ain't the bread, so much," said Tom; "I reckon it's mostly 3702 what they SAY over it before they start it out." 3703 3704 "But they don't say anything over it," said Huck. "I've seen 'em and 3705 they don't." 3706 3707 "Well, that's funny," said Tom. "But maybe they say it to themselves. 3708 Of COURSE they do. Anybody might know that." 3709 3710 The other boys agreed that there was reason in what Tom said, because 3711 an ignorant lump of bread, uninstructed by an incantation, could not be 3712 expected to act very intelligently when set upon an errand of such 3713 gravity. 3714 3715 "By jings, I wish I was over there, now," said Joe. 3716 3717 "I do too" said Huck "I'd give heaps to know who it is." 3718 3719 The boys still listened and watched. Presently a revealing thought 3720 flashed through Tom's mind, and he exclaimed: 3721 3722 "Boys, I know who's drownded--it's us!" 3723 3724 They felt like heroes in an instant. Here was a gorgeous triumph; they 3725 were missed; they were mourned; hearts were breaking on their account; 3726 tears were being shed; accusing memories of unkindness to these poor 3727 lost lads were rising up, and unavailing regrets and remorse were being 3728 indulged; and best of all, the departed were the talk of the whole 3729 town, and the envy of all the boys, as far as this dazzling notoriety 3730 was concerned. This was fine. It was worth while to be a pirate, after 3731 all. 3732 3733 As twilight drew on, the ferryboat went back to her accustomed 3734 business and the skiffs disappeared. The pirates returned to camp. They 3735 were jubilant with vanity over their new grandeur and the illustrious 3736 trouble they were making. They caught fish, cooked supper and ate it, 3737 and then fell to guessing at what the village was thinking and saying 3738 about them; and the pictures they drew of the public distress on their 3739 account were gratifying to look upon--from their point of view. But 3740 when the shadows of night closed them in, they gradually ceased to 3741 talk, and sat gazing into the fire, with their minds evidently 3742 wandering elsewhere. The excitement was gone, now, and Tom and Joe 3743 could not keep back thoughts of certain persons at home who were not 3744 enjoying this fine frolic as much as they were. Misgivings came; they 3745 grew troubled and unhappy; a sigh or two escaped, unawares. By and by 3746 Joe timidly ventured upon a roundabout "feeler" as to how the others 3747 might look upon a return to civilization--not right now, but-- 3748 3749 Tom withered him with derision! Huck, being uncommitted as yet, joined 3750 in with Tom, and the waverer quickly "explained," and was glad to get 3751 out of the scrape with as little taint of chicken-hearted homesickness 3752 clinging to his garments as he could. Mutiny was effectually laid to 3753 rest for the moment. 3754 3755 As the night deepened, Huck began to nod, and presently to snore. Joe 3756 followed next. Tom lay upon his elbow motionless, for some time, 3757 watching the two intently. At last he got up cautiously, on his knees, 3758 and went searching among the grass and the flickering reflections flung 3759 by the camp-fire. He picked up and inspected several large 3760 semi-cylinders of the thin white bark of a sycamore, and finally chose 3761 two which seemed to suit him. Then he knelt by the fire and painfully 3762 wrote something upon each of these with his "red keel"; one he rolled up 3763 and put in his jacket pocket, and the other he put in Joe's hat and 3764 removed it to a little distance from the owner. And he also put into the 3765 hat certain schoolboy treasures of almost inestimable value--among them 3766 a lump of chalk, an India-rubber ball, three fishhooks, and one of that 3767 kind of marbles known as a "sure 'nough crystal." Then he tiptoed his 3768 way cautiously among the trees till he felt that he was out of hearing, 3769 and straightway broke into a keen run in the direction of the sandbar. 3770 3771 3772 3773 CHAPTER XV 3774 3775 A FEW minutes later Tom was in the shoal water of the bar, wading 3776 toward the Illinois shore. Before the depth reached his middle he was 3777 half-way over; the current would permit no more wading, now, so he 3778 struck out confidently to swim the remaining hundred yards. He swam 3779 quartering upstream, but still was swept downward rather faster than he 3780 had expected. However, he reached the shore finally, and drifted along 3781 till he found a low place and drew himself out. He put his hand on his 3782 jacket pocket, found his piece of bark safe, and then struck through 3783 the woods, following the shore, with streaming garments. Shortly before 3784 ten o'clock he came out into an open place opposite the village, and 3785 saw the ferryboat lying in the shadow of the trees and the high bank. 3786 Everything was quiet under the blinking stars. He crept down the bank, 3787 watching with all his eyes, slipped into the water, swam three or four 3788 strokes and climbed into the skiff that did "yawl" duty at the boat's 3789 stern. He laid himself down under the thwarts and waited, panting. 3790 3791 Presently the cracked bell tapped and a voice gave the order to "cast 3792 off." A minute or two later the skiff's head was standing high up, 3793 against the boat's swell, and the voyage was begun. Tom felt happy in 3794 his success, for he knew it was the boat's last trip for the night. At 3795 the end of a long twelve or fifteen minutes the wheels stopped, and Tom 3796 slipped overboard and swam ashore in the dusk, landing fifty yards 3797 downstream, out of danger of possible stragglers. 3798 3799 He flew along unfrequented alleys, and shortly found himself at his 3800 aunt's back fence. He climbed over, approached the "ell," and looked in 3801 at the sitting-room window, for a light was burning there. There sat 3802 Aunt Polly, Sid, Mary, and Joe Harper's mother, grouped together, 3803 talking. They were by the bed, and the bed was between them and the 3804 door. Tom went to the door and began to softly lift the latch; then he 3805 pressed gently and the door yielded a crack; he continued pushing 3806 cautiously, and quaking every time it creaked, till he judged he might 3807 squeeze through on his knees; so he put his head through and began, 3808 warily. 3809 3810 "What makes the candle blow so?" said Aunt Polly. Tom hurried up. 3811 "Why, that door's open, I believe. Why, of course it is. No end of 3812 strange things now. Go 'long and shut it, Sid." 3813 3814 Tom disappeared under the bed just in time. He lay and "breathed" 3815 himself for a time, and then crept to where he could almost touch his 3816 aunt's foot. 3817 3818 "But as I was saying," said Aunt Polly, "he warn't BAD, so to say 3819 --only mischEEvous. Only just giddy, and harum-scarum, you know. He 3820 warn't any more responsible than a colt. HE never meant any harm, and 3821 he was the best-hearted boy that ever was"--and she began to cry. 3822 3823 "It was just so with my Joe--always full of his devilment, and up to 3824 every kind of mischief, but he was just as unselfish and kind as he 3825 could be--and laws bless me, to think I went and whipped him for taking 3826 that cream, never once recollecting that I throwed it out myself 3827 because it was sour, and I never to see him again in this world, never, 3828 never, never, poor abused boy!" And Mrs. Harper sobbed as if her heart 3829 would break. 3830 3831 "I hope Tom's better off where he is," said Sid, "but if he'd been 3832 better in some ways--" 3833 3834 "SID!" Tom felt the glare of the old lady's eye, though he could not 3835 see it. "Not a word against my Tom, now that he's gone! God'll take 3836 care of HIM--never you trouble YOURself, sir! Oh, Mrs. Harper, I don't 3837 know how to give him up! I don't know how to give him up! He was such a 3838 comfort to me, although he tormented my old heart out of me, 'most." 3839 3840 "The Lord giveth and the Lord hath taken away--Blessed be the name of 3841 the Lord! But it's so hard--Oh, it's so hard! Only last Saturday my 3842 Joe busted a firecracker right under my nose and I knocked him 3843 sprawling. Little did I know then, how soon--Oh, if it was to do over 3844 again I'd hug him and bless him for it." 3845 3846 "Yes, yes, yes, I know just how you feel, Mrs. Harper, I know just 3847 exactly how you feel. No longer ago than yesterday noon, my Tom took 3848 and filled the cat full of Pain-killer, and I did think the cretur 3849 would tear the house down. And God forgive me, I cracked Tom's head 3850 with my thimble, poor boy, poor dead boy. But he's out of all his 3851 troubles now. And the last words I ever heard him say was to reproach--" 3852 3853 But this memory was too much for the old lady, and she broke entirely 3854 down. Tom was snuffling, now, himself--and more in pity of himself than 3855 anybody else. He could hear Mary crying, and putting in a kindly word 3856 for him from time to time. He began to have a nobler opinion of himself 3857 than ever before. Still, he was sufficiently touched by his aunt's 3858 grief to long to rush out from under the bed and overwhelm her with 3859 joy--and the theatrical gorgeousness of the thing appealed strongly to 3860 his nature, too, but he resisted and lay still. 3861 3862 He went on listening, and gathered by odds and ends that it was 3863 conjectured at first that the boys had got drowned while taking a swim; 3864 then the small raft had been missed; next, certain boys said the 3865 missing lads had promised that the village should "hear something" 3866 soon; the wise-heads had "put this and that together" and decided that 3867 the lads had gone off on that raft and would turn up at the next town 3868 below, presently; but toward noon the raft had been found, lodged 3869 against the Missouri shore some five or six miles below the village 3870 --and then hope perished; they must be drowned, else hunger would have 3871 driven them home by nightfall if not sooner. It was believed that the 3872 search for the bodies had been a fruitless effort merely because the 3873 drowning must have occurred in mid-channel, since the boys, being good 3874 swimmers, would otherwise have escaped to shore. This was Wednesday 3875 night. If the bodies continued missing until Sunday, all hope would be 3876 given over, and the funerals would be preached on that morning. Tom 3877 shuddered. 3878 3879 Mrs. Harper gave a sobbing good-night and turned to go. Then with a 3880 mutual impulse the two bereaved women flung themselves into each 3881 other's arms and had a good, consoling cry, and then parted. Aunt Polly 3882 was tender far beyond her wont, in her good-night to Sid and Mary. Sid 3883 snuffled a bit and Mary went off crying with all her heart. 3884 3885 Aunt Polly knelt down and prayed for Tom so touchingly, so 3886 appealingly, and with such measureless love in her words and her old 3887 trembling voice, that he was weltering in tears again, long before she 3888 was through. 3889 3890 He had to keep still long after she went to bed, for she kept making 3891 broken-hearted ejaculations from time to time, tossing unrestfully, and 3892 turning over. But at last she was still, only moaning a little in her 3893 sleep. Now the boy stole out, rose gradually by the bedside, shaded the 3894 candle-light with his hand, and stood regarding her. His heart was full 3895 of pity for her. He took out his sycamore scroll and placed it by the 3896 candle. But something occurred to him, and he lingered considering. His 3897 face lighted with a happy solution of his thought; he put the bark 3898 hastily in his pocket. Then he bent over and kissed the faded lips, and 3899 straightway made his stealthy exit, latching the door behind him. 3900 3901 He threaded his way back to the ferry landing, found nobody at large 3902 there, and walked boldly on board the boat, for he knew she was 3903 tenantless except that there was a watchman, who always turned in and 3904 slept like a graven image. He untied the skiff at the stern, slipped 3905 into it, and was soon rowing cautiously upstream. When he had pulled a 3906 mile above the village, he started quartering across and bent himself 3907 stoutly to his work. He hit the landing on the other side neatly, for 3908 this was a familiar bit of work to him. He was moved to capture the 3909 skiff, arguing that it might be considered a ship and therefore 3910 legitimate prey for a pirate, but he knew a thorough search would be 3911 made for it and that might end in revelations. So he stepped ashore and 3912 entered the woods. 3913 3914 He sat down and took a long rest, torturing himself meanwhile to keep 3915 awake, and then started warily down the home-stretch. The night was far 3916 spent. It was broad daylight before he found himself fairly abreast the 3917 island bar. He rested again until the sun was well up and gilding the 3918 great river with its splendor, and then he plunged into the stream. A 3919 little later he paused, dripping, upon the threshold of the camp, and 3920 heard Joe say: 3921 3922 "No, Tom's true-blue, Huck, and he'll come back. He won't desert. He 3923 knows that would be a disgrace to a pirate, and Tom's too proud for 3924 that sort of thing. He's up to something or other. Now I wonder what?" 3925 3926 "Well, the things is ours, anyway, ain't they?" 3927 3928 "Pretty near, but not yet, Huck. The writing says they are if he ain't 3929 back here to breakfast." 3930 3931 "Which he is!" exclaimed Tom, with fine dramatic effect, stepping 3932 grandly into camp. 3933 3934 A sumptuous breakfast of bacon and fish was shortly provided, and as 3935 the boys set to work upon it, Tom recounted (and adorned) his 3936 adventures. They were a vain and boastful company of heroes when the 3937 tale was done. Then Tom hid himself away in a shady nook to sleep till 3938 noon, and the other pirates got ready to fish and explore. 3939 3940 3941 3942 CHAPTER XVI 3943 3944 AFTER dinner all the gang turned out to hunt for turtle eggs on the 3945 bar. They went about poking sticks into the sand, and when they found a 3946 soft place they went down on their knees and dug with their hands. 3947 Sometimes they would take fifty or sixty eggs out of one hole. They 3948 were perfectly round white things a trifle smaller than an English 3949 walnut. They had a famous fried-egg feast that night, and another on 3950 Friday morning. 3951 3952 After breakfast they went whooping and prancing out on the bar, and 3953 chased each other round and round, shedding clothes as they went, until 3954 they were naked, and then continued the frolic far away up the shoal 3955 water of the bar, against the stiff current, which latter tripped their 3956 legs from under them from time to time and greatly increased the fun. 3957 And now and then they stooped in a group and splashed water in each 3958 other's faces with their palms, gradually approaching each other, with 3959 averted faces to avoid the strangling sprays, and finally gripping and 3960 struggling till the best man ducked his neighbor, and then they all 3961 went under in a tangle of white legs and arms and came up blowing, 3962 sputtering, laughing, and gasping for breath at one and the same time. 3963 3964 When they were well exhausted, they would run out and sprawl on the 3965 dry, hot sand, and lie there and cover themselves up with it, and by 3966 and by break for the water again and go through the original 3967 performance once more. Finally it occurred to them that their naked 3968 skin represented flesh-colored "tights" very fairly; so they drew a 3969 ring in the sand and had a circus--with three clowns in it, for none 3970 would yield this proudest post to his neighbor. 3971 3972 Next they got their marbles and played "knucks" and "ring-taw" and 3973 "keeps" till that amusement grew stale. Then Joe and Huck had another 3974 swim, but Tom would not venture, because he found that in kicking off 3975 his trousers he had kicked his string of rattlesnake rattles off his 3976 ankle, and he wondered how he had escaped cramp so long without the 3977 protection of this mysterious charm. He did not venture again until he 3978 had found it, and by that time the other boys were tired and ready to 3979 rest. They gradually wandered apart, dropped into the "dumps," and fell 3980 to gazing longingly across the wide river to where the village lay 3981 drowsing in the sun. Tom found himself writing "BECKY" in the sand with 3982 his big toe; he scratched it out, and was angry with himself for his 3983 weakness. But he wrote it again, nevertheless; he could not help it. He 3984 erased it once more and then took himself out of temptation by driving 3985 the other boys together and joining them. 3986 3987 But Joe's spirits had gone down almost beyond resurrection. He was so 3988 homesick that he could hardly endure the misery of it. The tears lay 3989 very near the surface. Huck was melancholy, too. Tom was downhearted, 3990 but tried hard not to show it. He had a secret which he was not ready 3991 to tell, yet, but if this mutinous depression was not broken up soon, 3992 he would have to bring it out. He said, with a great show of 3993 cheerfulness: 3994 3995 "I bet there's been pirates on this island before, boys. We'll explore 3996 it again. They've hid treasures here somewhere. How'd you feel to light 3997 on a rotten chest full of gold and silver--hey?" 3998 3999 But it roused only faint enthusiasm, which faded out, with no reply. 4000 Tom tried one or two other seductions; but they failed, too. It was 4001 discouraging work. Joe sat poking up the sand with a stick and looking 4002 very gloomy. Finally he said: 4003 4004 "Oh, boys, let's give it up. I want to go home. It's so lonesome." 4005 4006 "Oh no, Joe, you'll feel better by and by," said Tom. "Just think of 4007 the fishing that's here." 4008 4009 "I don't care for fishing. I want to go home." 4010 4011 "But, Joe, there ain't such another swimming-place anywhere." 4012 4013 "Swimming's no good. I don't seem to care for it, somehow, when there 4014 ain't anybody to say I sha'n't go in. I mean to go home." 4015 4016 "Oh, shucks! Baby! You want to see your mother, I reckon." 4017 4018 "Yes, I DO want to see my mother--and you would, too, if you had one. 4019 I ain't any more baby than you are." And Joe snuffled a little. 4020 4021 "Well, we'll let the cry-baby go home to his mother, won't we, Huck? 4022 Poor thing--does it want to see its mother? And so it shall. You like 4023 it here, don't you, Huck? We'll stay, won't we?" 4024 4025 Huck said, "Y-e-s"--without any heart in it. 4026 4027 "I'll never speak to you again as long as I live," said Joe, rising. 4028 "There now!" And he moved moodily away and began to dress himself. 4029 4030 "Who cares!" said Tom. "Nobody wants you to. Go 'long home and get 4031 laughed at. Oh, you're a nice pirate. Huck and me ain't cry-babies. 4032 We'll stay, won't we, Huck? Let him go if he wants to. I reckon we can 4033 get along without him, per'aps." 4034 4035 But Tom was uneasy, nevertheless, and was alarmed to see Joe go 4036 sullenly on with his dressing. And then it was discomforting to see 4037 Huck eying Joe's preparations so wistfully, and keeping up such an 4038 ominous silence. Presently, without a parting word, Joe began to wade 4039 off toward the Illinois shore. Tom's heart began to sink. He glanced at 4040 Huck. Huck could not bear the look, and dropped his eyes. Then he said: 4041 4042 "I want to go, too, Tom. It was getting so lonesome anyway, and now 4043 it'll be worse. Let's us go, too, Tom." 4044 4045 "I won't! You can all go, if you want to. I mean to stay." 4046 4047 "Tom, I better go." 4048 4049 "Well, go 'long--who's hendering you." 4050 4051 Huck began to pick up his scattered clothes. He said: 4052 4053 "Tom, I wisht you'd come, too. Now you think it over. We'll wait for 4054 you when we get to shore." 4055 4056 "Well, you'll wait a blame long time, that's all." 4057 4058 Huck started sorrowfully away, and Tom stood looking after him, with a 4059 strong desire tugging at his heart to yield his pride and go along too. 4060 He hoped the boys would stop, but they still waded slowly on. It 4061 suddenly dawned on Tom that it was become very lonely and still. He 4062 made one final struggle with his pride, and then darted after his 4063 comrades, yelling: 4064 4065 "Wait! Wait! I want to tell you something!" 4066 4067 They presently stopped and turned around. When he got to where they 4068 were, he began unfolding his secret, and they listened moodily till at 4069 last they saw the "point" he was driving at, and then they set up a 4070 war-whoop of applause and said it was "splendid!" and said if he had 4071 told them at first, they wouldn't have started away. He made a plausible 4072 excuse; but his real reason had been the fear that not even the secret 4073 would keep them with him any very great length of time, and so he had 4074 meant to hold it in reserve as a last seduction. 4075 4076 The lads came gayly back and went at their sports again with a will, 4077 chattering all the time about Tom's stupendous plan and admiring the 4078 genius of it. After a dainty egg and fish dinner, Tom said he wanted to 4079 learn to smoke, now. Joe caught at the idea and said he would like to 4080 try, too. So Huck made pipes and filled them. These novices had never 4081 smoked anything before but cigars made of grape-vine, and they "bit" 4082 the tongue, and were not considered manly anyway. 4083 4084 Now they stretched themselves out on their elbows and began to puff, 4085 charily, and with slender confidence. The smoke had an unpleasant 4086 taste, and they gagged a little, but Tom said: 4087 4088 "Why, it's just as easy! If I'd a knowed this was all, I'd a learnt 4089 long ago." 4090 4091 "So would I," said Joe. "It's just nothing." 4092 4093 "Why, many a time I've looked at people smoking, and thought well I 4094 wish I could do that; but I never thought I could," said Tom. 4095 4096 "That's just the way with me, hain't it, Huck? You've heard me talk 4097 just that way--haven't you, Huck? I'll leave it to Huck if I haven't." 4098 4099 "Yes--heaps of times," said Huck. 4100 4101 "Well, I have too," said Tom; "oh, hundreds of times. Once down by the 4102 slaughter-house. Don't you remember, Huck? Bob Tanner was there, and 4103 Johnny Miller, and Jeff Thatcher, when I said it. Don't you remember, 4104 Huck, 'bout me saying that?" 4105 4106 "Yes, that's so," said Huck. "That was the day after I lost a white 4107 alley. No, 'twas the day before." 4108 4109 "There--I told you so," said Tom. "Huck recollects it." 4110 4111 "I bleeve I could smoke this pipe all day," said Joe. "I don't feel 4112 sick." 4113 4114 "Neither do I," said Tom. "I could smoke it all day. But I bet you 4115 Jeff Thatcher couldn't." 4116 4117 "Jeff Thatcher! Why, he'd keel over just with two draws. Just let him 4118 try it once. HE'D see!" 4119 4120 "I bet he would. And Johnny Miller--I wish could see Johnny Miller 4121 tackle it once." 4122 4123 "Oh, don't I!" said Joe. "Why, I bet you Johnny Miller couldn't any 4124 more do this than nothing. Just one little snifter would fetch HIM." 4125 4126 "'Deed it would, Joe. Say--I wish the boys could see us now." 4127 4128 "So do I." 4129 4130 "Say--boys, don't say anything about it, and some time when they're 4131 around, I'll come up to you and say, 'Joe, got a pipe? I want a smoke.' 4132 And you'll say, kind of careless like, as if it warn't anything, you'll 4133 say, 'Yes, I got my OLD pipe, and another one, but my tobacker ain't 4134 very good.' And I'll say, 'Oh, that's all right, if it's STRONG 4135 enough.' And then you'll out with the pipes, and we'll light up just as 4136 ca'm, and then just see 'em look!" 4137 4138 "By jings, that'll be gay, Tom! I wish it was NOW!" 4139 4140 "So do I! And when we tell 'em we learned when we was off pirating, 4141 won't they wish they'd been along?" 4142 4143 "Oh, I reckon not! I'll just BET they will!" 4144 4145 So the talk ran on. But presently it began to flag a trifle, and grow 4146 disjointed. The silences widened; the expectoration marvellously 4147 increased. Every pore inside the boys' cheeks became a spouting 4148 fountain; they could scarcely bail out the cellars under their tongues 4149 fast enough to prevent an inundation; little overflowings down their 4150 throats occurred in spite of all they could do, and sudden retchings 4151 followed every time. Both boys were looking very pale and miserable, 4152 now. Joe's pipe dropped from his nerveless fingers. Tom's followed. 4153 Both fountains were going furiously and both pumps bailing with might 4154 and main. Joe said feebly: 4155 4156 "I've lost my knife. I reckon I better go and find it." 4157 4158 Tom said, with quivering lips and halting utterance: 4159 4160 "I'll help you. You go over that way and I'll hunt around by the 4161 spring. No, you needn't come, Huck--we can find it." 4162 4163 So Huck sat down again, and waited an hour. Then he found it lonesome, 4164 and went to find his comrades. They were wide apart in the woods, both 4165 very pale, both fast asleep. But something informed him that if they 4166 had had any trouble they had got rid of it. 4167 4168 They were not talkative at supper that night. They had a humble look, 4169 and when Huck prepared his pipe after the meal and was going to prepare 4170 theirs, they said no, they were not feeling very well--something they 4171 ate at dinner had disagreed with them. 4172 4173 About midnight Joe awoke, and called the boys. There was a brooding 4174 oppressiveness in the air that seemed to bode something. The boys 4175 huddled themselves together and sought the friendly companionship of 4176 the fire, though the dull dead heat of the breathless atmosphere was 4177 stifling. They sat still, intent and waiting. The solemn hush 4178 continued. Beyond the light of the fire everything was swallowed up in 4179 the blackness of darkness. Presently there came a quivering glow that 4180 vaguely revealed the foliage for a moment and then vanished. By and by 4181 another came, a little stronger. Then another. Then a faint moan came 4182 sighing through the branches of the forest and the boys felt a fleeting 4183 breath upon their cheeks, and shuddered with the fancy that the Spirit 4184 of the Night had gone by. There was a pause. Now a weird flash turned 4185 night into day and showed every little grass-blade, separate and 4186 distinct, that grew about their feet. And it showed three white, 4187 startled faces, too. A deep peal of thunder went rolling and tumbling 4188 down the heavens and lost itself in sullen rumblings in the distance. A 4189 sweep of chilly air passed by, rustling all the leaves and snowing the 4190 flaky ashes broadcast about the fire. Another fierce glare lit up the 4191 forest and an instant crash followed that seemed to rend the tree-tops 4192 right over the boys' heads. They clung together in terror, in the thick 4193 gloom that followed. A few big rain-drops fell pattering upon the 4194 leaves. 4195 4196 "Quick! boys, go for the tent!" exclaimed Tom. 4197 4198 They sprang away, stumbling over roots and among vines in the dark, no 4199 two plunging in the same direction. A furious blast roared through the 4200 trees, making everything sing as it went. One blinding flash after 4201 another came, and peal on peal of deafening thunder. And now a 4202 drenching rain poured down and the rising hurricane drove it in sheets 4203 along the ground. The boys cried out to each other, but the roaring 4204 wind and the booming thunder-blasts drowned their voices utterly. 4205 However, one by one they straggled in at last and took shelter under 4206 the tent, cold, scared, and streaming with water; but to have company 4207 in misery seemed something to be grateful for. They could not talk, the 4208 old sail flapped so furiously, even if the other noises would have 4209 allowed them. The tempest rose higher and higher, and presently the 4210 sail tore loose from its fastenings and went winging away on the blast. 4211 The boys seized each others' hands and fled, with many tumblings and 4212 bruises, to the shelter of a great oak that stood upon the river-bank. 4213 Now the battle was at its highest. Under the ceaseless conflagration of 4214 lightning that flamed in the skies, everything below stood out in 4215 clean-cut and shadowless distinctness: the bending trees, the billowy 4216 river, white with foam, the driving spray of spume-flakes, the dim 4217 outlines of the high bluffs on the other side, glimpsed through the 4218 drifting cloud-rack and the slanting veil of rain. Every little while 4219 some giant tree yielded the fight and fell crashing through the younger 4220 growth; and the unflagging thunder-peals came now in ear-splitting 4221 explosive bursts, keen and sharp, and unspeakably appalling. The storm 4222 culminated in one matchless effort that seemed likely to tear the island 4223 to pieces, burn it up, drown it to the tree-tops, blow it away, and 4224 deafen every creature in it, all at one and the same moment. It was a 4225 wild night for homeless young heads to be out in. 4226 4227 But at last the battle was done, and the forces retired with weaker 4228 and weaker threatenings and grumblings, and peace resumed her sway. The 4229 boys went back to camp, a good deal awed; but they found there was 4230 still something to be thankful for, because the great sycamore, the 4231 shelter of their beds, was a ruin, now, blasted by the lightnings, and 4232 they were not under it when the catastrophe happened. 4233 4234 Everything in camp was drenched, the camp-fire as well; for they were 4235 but heedless lads, like their generation, and had made no provision 4236 against rain. Here was matter for dismay, for they were soaked through 4237 and chilled. They were eloquent in their distress; but they presently 4238 discovered that the fire had eaten so far up under the great log it had 4239 been built against (where it curved upward and separated itself from 4240 the ground), that a handbreadth or so of it had escaped wetting; so 4241 they patiently wrought until, with shreds and bark gathered from the 4242 under sides of sheltered logs, they coaxed the fire to burn again. Then 4243 they piled on great dead boughs till they had a roaring furnace, and 4244 were glad-hearted once more. They dried their boiled ham and had a 4245 feast, and after that they sat by the fire and expanded and glorified 4246 their midnight adventure until morning, for there was not a dry spot to 4247 sleep on, anywhere around. 4248 4249 As the sun began to steal in upon the boys, drowsiness came over them, 4250 and they went out on the sandbar and lay down to sleep. They got 4251 scorched out by and by, and drearily set about getting breakfast. After 4252 the meal they felt rusty, and stiff-jointed, and a little homesick once 4253 more. Tom saw the signs, and fell to cheering up the pirates as well as 4254 he could. But they cared nothing for marbles, or circus, or swimming, 4255 or anything. He reminded them of the imposing secret, and raised a ray 4256 of cheer. While it lasted, he got them interested in a new device. This 4257 was to knock off being pirates, for a while, and be Indians for a 4258 change. They were attracted by this idea; so it was not long before 4259 they were stripped, and striped from head to heel with black mud, like 4260 so many zebras--all of them chiefs, of course--and then they went 4261 tearing through the woods to attack an English settlement. 4262 4263 By and by they separated into three hostile tribes, and darted upon 4264 each other from ambush with dreadful war-whoops, and killed and scalped 4265 each other by thousands. It was a gory day. Consequently it was an 4266 extremely satisfactory one. 4267 4268 They assembled in camp toward supper-time, hungry and happy; but now a 4269 difficulty arose--hostile Indians could not break the bread of 4270 hospitality together without first making peace, and this was a simple 4271 impossibility without smoking a pipe of peace. There was no other 4272 process that ever they had heard of. Two of the savages almost wished 4273 they had remained pirates. However, there was no other way; so with 4274 such show of cheerfulness as they could muster they called for the pipe 4275 and took their whiff as it passed, in due form. 4276 4277 And behold, they were glad they had gone into savagery, for they had 4278 gained something; they found that they could now smoke a little without 4279 having to go and hunt for a lost knife; they did not get sick enough to 4280 be seriously uncomfortable. They were not likely to fool away this high 4281 promise for lack of effort. No, they practised cautiously, after 4282 supper, with right fair success, and so they spent a jubilant evening. 4283 They were prouder and happier in their new acquirement than they would 4284 have been in the scalping and skinning of the Six Nations. We will 4285 leave them to smoke and chatter and brag, since we have no further use 4286 for them at present. 4287 4288 4289 4290 CHAPTER XVII 4291 4292 BUT there was no hilarity in the little town that same tranquil 4293 Saturday afternoon. The Harpers, and Aunt Polly's family, were being 4294 put into mourning, with great grief and many tears. An unusual quiet 4295 possessed the village, although it was ordinarily quiet enough, in all 4296 conscience. The villagers conducted their concerns with an absent air, 4297 and talked little; but they sighed often. The Saturday holiday seemed a 4298 burden to the children. They had no heart in their sports, and 4299 gradually gave them up. 4300 4301 In the afternoon Becky Thatcher found herself moping about the 4302 deserted schoolhouse yard, and feeling very melancholy. But she found 4303 nothing there to comfort her. She soliloquized: 4304 4305 "Oh, if I only had a brass andiron-knob again! But I haven't got 4306 anything now to remember him by." And she choked back a little sob. 4307 4308 Presently she stopped, and said to herself: 4309 4310 "It was right here. Oh, if it was to do over again, I wouldn't say 4311 that--I wouldn't say it for the whole world. But he's gone now; I'll 4312 never, never, never see him any more." 4313 4314 This thought broke her down, and she wandered away, with tears rolling 4315 down her cheeks. Then quite a group of boys and girls--playmates of 4316 Tom's and Joe's--came by, and stood looking over the paling fence and 4317 talking in reverent tones of how Tom did so-and-so the last time they 4318 saw him, and how Joe said this and that small trifle (pregnant with 4319 awful prophecy, as they could easily see now!)--and each speaker 4320 pointed out the exact spot where the lost lads stood at the time, and 4321 then added something like "and I was a-standing just so--just as I am 4322 now, and as if you was him--I was as close as that--and he smiled, just 4323 this way--and then something seemed to go all over me, like--awful, you 4324 know--and I never thought what it meant, of course, but I can see now!" 4325 4326 Then there was a dispute about who saw the dead boys last in life, and 4327 many claimed that dismal distinction, and offered evidences, more or 4328 less tampered with by the witness; and when it was ultimately decided 4329 who DID see the departed last, and exchanged the last words with them, 4330 the lucky parties took upon themselves a sort of sacred importance, and 4331 were gaped at and envied by all the rest. One poor chap, who had no 4332 other grandeur to offer, said with tolerably manifest pride in the 4333 remembrance: 4334 4335 "Well, Tom Sawyer he licked me once." 4336 4337 But that bid for glory was a failure. Most of the boys could say that, 4338 and so that cheapened the distinction too much. The group loitered 4339 away, still recalling memories of the lost heroes, in awed voices. 4340 4341 When the Sunday-school hour was finished, the next morning, the bell 4342 began to toll, instead of ringing in the usual way. It was a very still 4343 Sabbath, and the mournful sound seemed in keeping with the musing hush 4344 that lay upon nature. The villagers began to gather, loitering a moment 4345 in the vestibule to converse in whispers about the sad event. But there 4346 was no whispering in the house; only the funereal rustling of dresses 4347 as the women gathered to their seats disturbed the silence there. None 4348 could remember when the little church had been so full before. There 4349 was finally a waiting pause, an expectant dumbness, and then Aunt Polly 4350 entered, followed by Sid and Mary, and they by the Harper family, all 4351 in deep black, and the whole congregation, the old minister as well, 4352 rose reverently and stood until the mourners were seated in the front 4353 pew. There was another communing silence, broken at intervals by 4354 muffled sobs, and then the minister spread his hands abroad and prayed. 4355 A moving hymn was sung, and the text followed: "I am the Resurrection 4356 and the Life." 4357 4358 As the service proceeded, the clergyman drew such pictures of the 4359 graces, the winning ways, and the rare promise of the lost lads that 4360 every soul there, thinking he recognized these pictures, felt a pang in 4361 remembering that he had persistently blinded himself to them always 4362 before, and had as persistently seen only faults and flaws in the poor 4363 boys. The minister related many a touching incident in the lives of the 4364 departed, too, which illustrated their sweet, generous natures, and the 4365 people could easily see, now, how noble and beautiful those episodes 4366 were, and remembered with grief that at the time they occurred they had 4367 seemed rank rascalities, well deserving of the cowhide. The 4368 congregation became more and more moved, as the pathetic tale went on, 4369 till at last the whole company broke down and joined the weeping 4370 mourners in a chorus of anguished sobs, the preacher himself giving way 4371 to his feelings, and crying in the pulpit. 4372 4373 There was a rustle in the gallery, which nobody noticed; a moment 4374 later the church door creaked; the minister raised his streaming eyes 4375 above his handkerchief, and stood transfixed! First one and then 4376 another pair of eyes followed the minister's, and then almost with one 4377 impulse the congregation rose and stared while the three dead boys came 4378 marching up the aisle, Tom in the lead, Joe next, and Huck, a ruin of 4379 drooping rags, sneaking sheepishly in the rear! They had been hid in 4380 the unused gallery listening to their own funeral sermon! 4381 4382 Aunt Polly, Mary, and the Harpers threw themselves upon their restored 4383 ones, smothered them with kisses and poured out thanksgivings, while 4384 poor Huck stood abashed and uncomfortable, not knowing exactly what to 4385 do or where to hide from so many unwelcoming eyes. He wavered, and 4386 started to slink away, but Tom seized him and said: 4387 4388 "Aunt Polly, it ain't fair. Somebody's got to be glad to see Huck." 4389 4390 "And so they shall. I'm glad to see him, poor motherless thing!" And 4391 the loving attentions Aunt Polly lavished upon him were the one thing 4392 capable of making him more uncomfortable than he was before. 4393 4394 Suddenly the minister shouted at the top of his voice: "Praise God 4395 from whom all blessings flow--SING!--and put your hearts in it!" 4396 4397 And they did. Old Hundred swelled up with a triumphant burst, and 4398 while it shook the rafters Tom Sawyer the Pirate looked around upon the 4399 envying juveniles about him and confessed in his heart that this was 4400 the proudest moment of his life. 4401 4402 As the "sold" congregation trooped out they said they would almost be 4403 willing to be made ridiculous again to hear Old Hundred sung like that 4404 once more. 4405 4406 Tom got more cuffs and kisses that day--according to Aunt Polly's 4407 varying moods--than he had earned before in a year; and he hardly knew 4408 which expressed the most gratefulness to God and affection for himself. 4409 4410 4411 4412 CHAPTER XVIII 4413 4414 THAT was Tom's great secret--the scheme to return home with his 4415 brother pirates and attend their own funerals. They had paddled over to 4416 the Missouri shore on a log, at dusk on Saturday, landing five or six 4417 miles below the village; they had slept in the woods at the edge of the 4418 town till nearly daylight, and had then crept through back lanes and 4419 alleys and finished their sleep in the gallery of the church among a 4420 chaos of invalided benches. 4421 4422 At breakfast, Monday morning, Aunt Polly and Mary were very loving to 4423 Tom, and very attentive to his wants. There was an unusual amount of 4424 talk. In the course of it Aunt Polly said: 4425 4426 "Well, I don't say it wasn't a fine joke, Tom, to keep everybody 4427 suffering 'most a week so you boys had a good time, but it is a pity 4428 you could be so hard-hearted as to let me suffer so. If you could come 4429 over on a log to go to your funeral, you could have come over and give 4430 me a hint some way that you warn't dead, but only run off." 4431 4432 "Yes, you could have done that, Tom," said Mary; "and I believe you 4433 would if you had thought of it." 4434 4435 "Would you, Tom?" said Aunt Polly, her face lighting wistfully. "Say, 4436 now, would you, if you'd thought of it?" 4437 4438 "I--well, I don't know. 'Twould 'a' spoiled everything." 4439 4440 "Tom, I hoped you loved me that much," said Aunt Polly, with a grieved 4441 tone that discomforted the boy. "It would have been something if you'd 4442 cared enough to THINK of it, even if you didn't DO it." 4443 4444 "Now, auntie, that ain't any harm," pleaded Mary; "it's only Tom's 4445 giddy way--he is always in such a rush that he never thinks of 4446 anything." 4447 4448 "More's the pity. Sid would have thought. And Sid would have come and 4449 DONE it, too. Tom, you'll look back, some day, when it's too late, and 4450 wish you'd cared a little more for me when it would have cost you so 4451 little." 4452 4453 "Now, auntie, you know I do care for you," said Tom. 4454 4455 "I'd know it better if you acted more like it." 4456 4457 "I wish now I'd thought," said Tom, with a repentant tone; "but I 4458 dreamt about you, anyway. That's something, ain't it?" 4459 4460 "It ain't much--a cat does that much--but it's better than nothing. 4461 What did you dream?" 4462 4463 "Why, Wednesday night I dreamt that you was sitting over there by the 4464 bed, and Sid was sitting by the woodbox, and Mary next to him." 4465 4466 "Well, so we did. So we always do. I'm glad your dreams could take 4467 even that much trouble about us." 4468 4469 "And I dreamt that Joe Harper's mother was here." 4470 4471 "Why, she was here! Did you dream any more?" 4472 4473 "Oh, lots. But it's so dim, now." 4474 4475 "Well, try to recollect--can't you?" 4476 4477 "Somehow it seems to me that the wind--the wind blowed the--the--" 4478 4479 "Try harder, Tom! The wind did blow something. Come!" 4480 4481 Tom pressed his fingers on his forehead an anxious minute, and then 4482 said: 4483 4484 "I've got it now! I've got it now! It blowed the candle!" 4485 4486 "Mercy on us! Go on, Tom--go on!" 4487 4488 "And it seems to me that you said, 'Why, I believe that that door--'" 4489 4490 "Go ON, Tom!" 4491 4492 "Just let me study a moment--just a moment. Oh, yes--you said you 4493 believed the door was open." 4494 4495 "As I'm sitting here, I did! Didn't I, Mary! Go on!" 4496 4497 "And then--and then--well I won't be certain, but it seems like as if 4498 you made Sid go and--and--" 4499 4500 "Well? Well? What did I make him do, Tom? What did I make him do?" 4501 4502 "You made him--you--Oh, you made him shut it." 4503 4504 "Well, for the land's sake! I never heard the beat of that in all my 4505 days! Don't tell ME there ain't anything in dreams, any more. Sereny 4506 Harper shall know of this before I'm an hour older. I'd like to see her 4507 get around THIS with her rubbage 'bout superstition. Go on, Tom!" 4508 4509 "Oh, it's all getting just as bright as day, now. Next you said I 4510 warn't BAD, only mischeevous and harum-scarum, and not any more 4511 responsible than--than--I think it was a colt, or something." 4512 4513 "And so it was! Well, goodness gracious! Go on, Tom!" 4514 4515 "And then you began to cry." 4516 4517 "So I did. So I did. Not the first time, neither. And then--" 4518 4519 "Then Mrs. Harper she began to cry, and said Joe was just the same, 4520 and she wished she hadn't whipped him for taking cream when she'd 4521 throwed it out her own self--" 4522 4523 "Tom! The sperrit was upon you! You was a prophesying--that's what you 4524 was doing! Land alive, go on, Tom!" 4525 4526 "Then Sid he said--he said--" 4527 4528 "I don't think I said anything," said Sid. 4529 4530 "Yes you did, Sid," said Mary. 4531 4532 "Shut your heads and let Tom go on! What did he say, Tom?" 4533 4534 "He said--I THINK he said he hoped I was better off where I was gone 4535 to, but if I'd been better sometimes--" 4536 4537 "THERE, d'you hear that! It was his very words!" 4538 4539 "And you shut him up sharp." 4540 4541 "I lay I did! There must 'a' been an angel there. There WAS an angel 4542 there, somewheres!" 4543 4544 "And Mrs. Harper told about Joe scaring her with a firecracker, and 4545 you told about Peter and the Painkiller--" 4546 4547 "Just as true as I live!" 4548 4549 "And then there was a whole lot of talk 'bout dragging the river for 4550 us, and 'bout having the funeral Sunday, and then you and old Miss 4551 Harper hugged and cried, and she went." 4552 4553 "It happened just so! It happened just so, as sure as I'm a-sitting in 4554 these very tracks. Tom, you couldn't told it more like if you'd 'a' 4555 seen it! And then what? Go on, Tom!" 4556 4557 "Then I thought you prayed for me--and I could see you and hear every 4558 word you said. And you went to bed, and I was so sorry that I took and 4559 wrote on a piece of sycamore bark, 'We ain't dead--we are only off 4560 being pirates,' and put it on the table by the candle; and then you 4561 looked so good, laying there asleep, that I thought I went and leaned 4562 over and kissed you on the lips." 4563 4564 "Did you, Tom, DID you! I just forgive you everything for that!" And 4565 she seized the boy in a crushing embrace that made him feel like the 4566 guiltiest of villains. 4567 4568 "It was very kind, even though it was only a--dream," Sid soliloquized 4569 just audibly. 4570 4571 "Shut up, Sid! A body does just the same in a dream as he'd do if he 4572 was awake. Here's a big Milum apple I've been saving for you, Tom, if 4573 you was ever found again--now go 'long to school. I'm thankful to the 4574 good God and Father of us all I've got you back, that's long-suffering 4575 and merciful to them that believe on Him and keep His word, though 4576 goodness knows I'm unworthy of it, but if only the worthy ones got His 4577 blessings and had His hand to help them over the rough places, there's 4578 few enough would smile here or ever enter into His rest when the long 4579 night comes. Go 'long Sid, Mary, Tom--take yourselves off--you've 4580 hendered me long enough." 4581 4582 The children left for school, and the old lady to call on Mrs. Harper 4583 and vanquish her realism with Tom's marvellous dream. Sid had better 4584 judgment than to utter the thought that was in his mind as he left the 4585 house. It was this: "Pretty thin--as long a dream as that, without any 4586 mistakes in it!" 4587 4588 What a hero Tom was become, now! He did not go skipping and prancing, 4589 but moved with a dignified swagger as became a pirate who felt that the 4590 public eye was on him. And indeed it was; he tried not to seem to see 4591 the looks or hear the remarks as he passed along, but they were food 4592 and drink to him. Smaller boys than himself flocked at his heels, as 4593 proud to be seen with him, and tolerated by him, as if he had been the 4594 drummer at the head of a procession or the elephant leading a menagerie 4595 into town. Boys of his own size pretended not to know he had been away 4596 at all; but they were consuming with envy, nevertheless. They would 4597 have given anything to have that swarthy suntanned skin of his, and his 4598 glittering notoriety; and Tom would not have parted with either for a 4599 circus. 4600 4601 At school the children made so much of him and of Joe, and delivered 4602 such eloquent admiration from their eyes, that the two heroes were not 4603 long in becoming insufferably "stuck-up." They began to tell their 4604 adventures to hungry listeners--but they only began; it was not a thing 4605 likely to have an end, with imaginations like theirs to furnish 4606 material. And finally, when they got out their pipes and went serenely 4607 puffing around, the very summit of glory was reached. 4608 4609 Tom decided that he could be independent of Becky Thatcher now. Glory 4610 was sufficient. He would live for glory. Now that he was distinguished, 4611 maybe she would be wanting to "make up." Well, let her--she should see 4612 that he could be as indifferent as some other people. Presently she 4613 arrived. Tom pretended not to see her. He moved away and joined a group 4614 of boys and girls and began to talk. Soon he observed that she was 4615 tripping gayly back and forth with flushed face and dancing eyes, 4616 pretending to be busy chasing schoolmates, and screaming with laughter 4617 when she made a capture; but he noticed that she always made her 4618 captures in his vicinity, and that she seemed to cast a conscious eye 4619 in his direction at such times, too. It gratified all the vicious 4620 vanity that was in him; and so, instead of winning him, it only "set 4621 him up" the more and made him the more diligent to avoid betraying that 4622 he knew she was about. Presently she gave over skylarking, and moved 4623 irresolutely about, sighing once or twice and glancing furtively and 4624 wistfully toward Tom. Then she observed that now Tom was talking more 4625 particularly to Amy Lawrence than to any one else. She felt a sharp 4626 pang and grew disturbed and uneasy at once. She tried to go away, but 4627 her feet were treacherous, and carried her to the group instead. She 4628 said to a girl almost at Tom's elbow--with sham vivacity: 4629 4630 "Why, Mary Austin! you bad girl, why didn't you come to Sunday-school?" 4631 4632 "I did come--didn't you see me?" 4633 4634 "Why, no! Did you? Where did you sit?" 4635 4636 "I was in Miss Peters' class, where I always go. I saw YOU." 4637 4638 "Did you? Why, it's funny I didn't see you. I wanted to tell you about 4639 the picnic." 4640 4641 "Oh, that's jolly. Who's going to give it?" 4642 4643 "My ma's going to let me have one." 4644 4645 "Oh, goody; I hope she'll let ME come." 4646 4647 "Well, she will. The picnic's for me. She'll let anybody come that I 4648 want, and I want you." 4649 4650 "That's ever so nice. When is it going to be?" 4651 4652 "By and by. Maybe about vacation." 4653 4654 "Oh, won't it be fun! You going to have all the girls and boys?" 4655 4656 "Yes, every one that's friends to me--or wants to be"; and she glanced 4657 ever so furtively at Tom, but he talked right along to Amy Lawrence 4658 about the terrible storm on the island, and how the lightning tore the 4659 great sycamore tree "all to flinders" while he was "standing within 4660 three feet of it." 4661 4662 "Oh, may I come?" said Grace Miller. 4663 4664 "Yes." 4665 4666 "And me?" said Sally Rogers. 4667 4668 "Yes." 4669 4670 "And me, too?" said Susy Harper. "And Joe?" 4671 4672 "Yes." 4673 4674 And so on, with clapping of joyful hands till all the group had begged 4675 for invitations but Tom and Amy. Then Tom turned coolly away, still 4676 talking, and took Amy with him. Becky's lips trembled and the tears 4677 came to her eyes; she hid these signs with a forced gayety and went on 4678 chattering, but the life had gone out of the picnic, now, and out of 4679 everything else; she got away as soon as she could and hid herself and 4680 had what her sex call "a good cry." Then she sat moody, with wounded 4681 pride, till the bell rang. She roused up, now, with a vindictive cast 4682 in her eye, and gave her plaited tails a shake and said she knew what 4683 SHE'D do. 4684 4685 At recess Tom continued his flirtation with Amy with jubilant 4686 self-satisfaction. And he kept drifting about to find Becky and lacerate 4687 her with the performance. At last he spied her, but there was a sudden 4688 falling of his mercury. She was sitting cosily on a little bench behind 4689 the schoolhouse looking at a picture-book with Alfred Temple--and so 4690 absorbed were they, and their heads so close together over the book, 4691 that they did not seem to be conscious of anything in the world besides. 4692 Jealousy ran red-hot through Tom's veins. He began to hate himself for 4693 throwing away the chance Becky had offered for a reconciliation. He 4694 called himself a fool, and all the hard names he could think of. He 4695 wanted to cry with vexation. Amy chatted happily along, as they walked, 4696 for her heart was singing, but Tom's tongue had lost its function. He 4697 did not hear what Amy was saying, and whenever she paused expectantly he 4698 could only stammer an awkward assent, which was as often misplaced as 4699 otherwise. He kept drifting to the rear of the schoolhouse, again and 4700 again, to sear his eyeballs with the hateful spectacle there. He could 4701 not help it. And it maddened him to see, as he thought he saw, that 4702 Becky Thatcher never once suspected that he was even in the land of the 4703 living. But she did see, nevertheless; and she knew she was winning her 4704 fight, too, and was glad to see him suffer as she had suffered. 4705 4706 Amy's happy prattle became intolerable. Tom hinted at things he had to 4707 attend to; things that must be done; and time was fleeting. But in 4708 vain--the girl chirped on. Tom thought, "Oh, hang her, ain't I ever 4709 going to get rid of her?" At last he must be attending to those 4710 things--and she said artlessly that she would be "around" when school 4711 let out. And he hastened away, hating her for it. 4712 4713 "Any other boy!" Tom thought, grating his teeth. "Any boy in the whole 4714 town but that Saint Louis smarty that thinks he dresses so fine and is 4715 aristocracy! Oh, all right, I licked you the first day you ever saw 4716 this town, mister, and I'll lick you again! You just wait till I catch 4717 you out! I'll just take and--" 4718 4719 And he went through the motions of thrashing an imaginary boy 4720 --pummelling the air, and kicking and gouging. "Oh, you do, do you? You 4721 holler 'nough, do you? Now, then, let that learn you!" And so the 4722 imaginary flogging was finished to his satisfaction. 4723 4724 Tom fled home at noon. His conscience could not endure any more of 4725 Amy's grateful happiness, and his jealousy could bear no more of the 4726 other distress. Becky resumed her picture inspections with Alfred, but 4727 as the minutes dragged along and no Tom came to suffer, her triumph 4728 began to cloud and she lost interest; gravity and absent-mindedness 4729 followed, and then melancholy; two or three times she pricked up her 4730 ear at a footstep, but it was a false hope; no Tom came. At last she 4731 grew entirely miserable and wished she hadn't carried it so far. When 4732 poor Alfred, seeing that he was losing her, he did not know how, kept 4733 exclaiming: "Oh, here's a jolly one! look at this!" she lost patience 4734 at last, and said, "Oh, don't bother me! I don't care for them!" and 4735 burst into tears, and got up and walked away. 4736 4737 Alfred dropped alongside and was going to try to comfort her, but she 4738 said: 4739 4740 "Go away and leave me alone, can't you! I hate you!" 4741 4742 So the boy halted, wondering what he could have done--for she had said 4743 she would look at pictures all through the nooning--and she walked on, 4744 crying. Then Alfred went musing into the deserted schoolhouse. He was 4745 humiliated and angry. He easily guessed his way to the truth--the girl 4746 had simply made a convenience of him to vent her spite upon Tom Sawyer. 4747 He was far from hating Tom the less when this thought occurred to him. 4748 He wished there was some way to get that boy into trouble without much 4749 risk to himself. Tom's spelling-book fell under his eye. Here was his 4750 opportunity. He gratefully opened to the lesson for the afternoon and 4751 poured ink upon the page. 4752 4753 Becky, glancing in at a window behind him at the moment, saw the act, 4754 and moved on, without discovering herself. She started homeward, now, 4755 intending to find Tom and tell him; Tom would be thankful and their 4756 troubles would be healed. Before she was half way home, however, she 4757 had changed her mind. The thought of Tom's treatment of her when she 4758 was talking about her picnic came scorching back and filled her with 4759 shame. She resolved to let him get whipped on the damaged 4760 spelling-book's account, and to hate him forever, into the bargain. 4761 4762 4763 4764 CHAPTER XIX 4765 4766 TOM arrived at home in a dreary mood, and the first thing his aunt 4767 said to him showed him that he had brought his sorrows to an 4768 unpromising market: 4769 4770 "Tom, I've a notion to skin you alive!" 4771 4772 "Auntie, what have I done?" 4773 4774 "Well, you've done enough. Here I go over to Sereny Harper, like an 4775 old softy, expecting I'm going to make her believe all that rubbage 4776 about that dream, when lo and behold you she'd found out from Joe that 4777 you was over here and heard all the talk we had that night. Tom, I 4778 don't know what is to become of a boy that will act like that. It makes 4779 me feel so bad to think you could let me go to Sereny Harper and make 4780 such a fool of myself and never say a word." 4781 4782 This was a new aspect of the thing. His smartness of the morning had 4783 seemed to Tom a good joke before, and very ingenious. It merely looked 4784 mean and shabby now. He hung his head and could not think of anything 4785 to say for a moment. Then he said: 4786 4787 "Auntie, I wish I hadn't done it--but I didn't think." 4788 4789 "Oh, child, you never think. You never think of anything but your own 4790 selfishness. You could think to come all the way over here from 4791 Jackson's Island in the night to laugh at our troubles, and you could 4792 think to fool me with a lie about a dream; but you couldn't ever think 4793 to pity us and save us from sorrow." 4794 4795 "Auntie, I know now it was mean, but I didn't mean to be mean. I 4796 didn't, honest. And besides, I didn't come over here to laugh at you 4797 that night." 4798 4799 "What did you come for, then?" 4800 4801 "It was to tell you not to be uneasy about us, because we hadn't got 4802 drownded." 4803 4804 "Tom, Tom, I would be the thankfullest soul in this world if I could 4805 believe you ever had as good a thought as that, but you know you never 4806 did--and I know it, Tom." 4807 4808 "Indeed and 'deed I did, auntie--I wish I may never stir if I didn't." 4809 4810 "Oh, Tom, don't lie--don't do it. It only makes things a hundred times 4811 worse." 4812 4813 "It ain't a lie, auntie; it's the truth. I wanted to keep you from 4814 grieving--that was all that made me come." 4815 4816 "I'd give the whole world to believe that--it would cover up a power 4817 of sins, Tom. I'd 'most be glad you'd run off and acted so bad. But it 4818 ain't reasonable; because, why didn't you tell me, child?" 4819 4820 "Why, you see, when you got to talking about the funeral, I just got 4821 all full of the idea of our coming and hiding in the church, and I 4822 couldn't somehow bear to spoil it. So I just put the bark back in my 4823 pocket and kept mum." 4824 4825 "What bark?" 4826 4827 "The bark I had wrote on to tell you we'd gone pirating. I wish, now, 4828 you'd waked up when I kissed you--I do, honest." 4829 4830 The hard lines in his aunt's face relaxed and a sudden tenderness 4831 dawned in her eyes. 4832 4833 "DID you kiss me, Tom?" 4834 4835 "Why, yes, I did." 4836 4837 "Are you sure you did, Tom?" 4838 4839 "Why, yes, I did, auntie--certain sure." 4840 4841 "What did you kiss me for, Tom?" 4842 4843 "Because I loved you so, and you laid there moaning and I was so sorry." 4844 4845 The words sounded like truth. The old lady could not hide a tremor in 4846 her voice when she said: 4847 4848 "Kiss me again, Tom!--and be off with you to school, now, and don't 4849 bother me any more." 4850 4851 The moment he was gone, she ran to a closet and got out the ruin of a 4852 jacket which Tom had gone pirating in. Then she stopped, with it in her 4853 hand, and said to herself: 4854 4855 "No, I don't dare. Poor boy, I reckon he's lied about it--but it's a 4856 blessed, blessed lie, there's such a comfort come from it. I hope the 4857 Lord--I KNOW the Lord will forgive him, because it was such 4858 goodheartedness in him to tell it. But I don't want to find out it's a 4859 lie. I won't look." 4860 4861 She put the jacket away, and stood by musing a minute. Twice she put 4862 out her hand to take the garment again, and twice she refrained. Once 4863 more she ventured, and this time she fortified herself with the 4864 thought: "It's a good lie--it's a good lie--I won't let it grieve me." 4865 So she sought the jacket pocket. A moment later she was reading Tom's 4866 piece of bark through flowing tears and saying: "I could forgive the 4867 boy, now, if he'd committed a million sins!" 4868 4869 4870 4871 CHAPTER XX 4872 4873 THERE was something about Aunt Polly's manner, when she kissed Tom, 4874 that swept away his low spirits and made him lighthearted and happy 4875 again. He started to school and had the luck of coming upon Becky 4876 Thatcher at the head of Meadow Lane. His mood always determined his 4877 manner. Without a moment's hesitation he ran to her and said: 4878 4879 "I acted mighty mean to-day, Becky, and I'm so sorry. I won't ever, 4880 ever do that way again, as long as ever I live--please make up, won't 4881 you?" 4882 4883 The girl stopped and looked him scornfully in the face: 4884 4885 "I'll thank you to keep yourself TO yourself, Mr. Thomas Sawyer. I'll 4886 never speak to you again." 4887 4888 She tossed her head and passed on. Tom was so stunned that he had not 4889 even presence of mind enough to say "Who cares, Miss Smarty?" until the 4890 right time to say it had gone by. So he said nothing. But he was in a 4891 fine rage, nevertheless. He moped into the schoolyard wishing she were 4892 a boy, and imagining how he would trounce her if she were. He presently 4893 encountered her and delivered a stinging remark as he passed. She 4894 hurled one in return, and the angry breach was complete. It seemed to 4895 Becky, in her hot resentment, that she could hardly wait for school to 4896 "take in," she was so impatient to see Tom flogged for the injured 4897 spelling-book. If she had had any lingering notion of exposing Alfred 4898 Temple, Tom's offensive fling had driven it entirely away. 4899 4900 Poor girl, she did not know how fast she was nearing trouble herself. 4901 The master, Mr. Dobbins, had reached middle age with an unsatisfied 4902 ambition. The darling of his desires was, to be a doctor, but poverty 4903 had decreed that he should be nothing higher than a village 4904 schoolmaster. Every day he took a mysterious book out of his desk and 4905 absorbed himself in it at times when no classes were reciting. He kept 4906 that book under lock and key. There was not an urchin in school but was 4907 perishing to have a glimpse of it, but the chance never came. Every boy 4908 and girl had a theory about the nature of that book; but no two 4909 theories were alike, and there was no way of getting at the facts in 4910 the case. Now, as Becky was passing by the desk, which stood near the 4911 door, she noticed that the key was in the lock! It was a precious 4912 moment. She glanced around; found herself alone, and the next instant 4913 she had the book in her hands. The title-page--Professor Somebody's 4914 ANATOMY--carried no information to her mind; so she began to turn the 4915 leaves. She came at once upon a handsomely engraved and colored 4916 frontispiece--a human figure, stark naked. At that moment a shadow fell 4917 on the page and Tom Sawyer stepped in at the door and caught a glimpse 4918 of the picture. Becky snatched at the book to close it, and had the 4919 hard luck to tear the pictured page half down the middle. She thrust 4920 the volume into the desk, turned the key, and burst out crying with 4921 shame and vexation. 4922 4923 "Tom Sawyer, you are just as mean as you can be, to sneak up on a 4924 person and look at what they're looking at." 4925 4926 "How could I know you was looking at anything?" 4927 4928 "You ought to be ashamed of yourself, Tom Sawyer; you know you're 4929 going to tell on me, and oh, what shall I do, what shall I do! I'll be 4930 whipped, and I never was whipped in school." 4931 4932 Then she stamped her little foot and said: 4933 4934 "BE so mean if you want to! I know something that's going to happen. 4935 You just wait and you'll see! Hateful, hateful, hateful!"--and she 4936 flung out of the house with a new explosion of crying. 4937 4938 Tom stood still, rather flustered by this onslaught. Presently he said 4939 to himself: 4940 4941 "What a curious kind of a fool a girl is! Never been licked in school! 4942 Shucks! What's a licking! That's just like a girl--they're so 4943 thin-skinned and chicken-hearted. Well, of course I ain't going to tell 4944 old Dobbins on this little fool, because there's other ways of getting 4945 even on her, that ain't so mean; but what of it? Old Dobbins will ask 4946 who it was tore his book. Nobody'll answer. Then he'll do just the way 4947 he always does--ask first one and then t'other, and when he comes to the 4948 right girl he'll know it, without any telling. Girls' faces always tell 4949 on them. They ain't got any backbone. She'll get licked. Well, it's a 4950 kind of a tight place for Becky Thatcher, because there ain't any way 4951 out of it." Tom conned the thing a moment longer, and then added: "All 4952 right, though; she'd like to see me in just such a fix--let her sweat it 4953 out!" 4954 4955 Tom joined the mob of skylarking scholars outside. In a few moments 4956 the master arrived and school "took in." Tom did not feel a strong 4957 interest in his studies. Every time he stole a glance at the girls' 4958 side of the room Becky's face troubled him. Considering all things, he 4959 did not want to pity her, and yet it was all he could do to help it. He 4960 could get up no exultation that was really worthy the name. Presently 4961 the spelling-book discovery was made, and Tom's mind was entirely full 4962 of his own matters for a while after that. Becky roused up from her 4963 lethargy of distress and showed good interest in the proceedings. She 4964 did not expect that Tom could get out of his trouble by denying that he 4965 spilt the ink on the book himself; and she was right. The denial only 4966 seemed to make the thing worse for Tom. Becky supposed she would be 4967 glad of that, and she tried to believe she was glad of it, but she 4968 found she was not certain. When the worst came to the worst, she had an 4969 impulse to get up and tell on Alfred Temple, but she made an effort and 4970 forced herself to keep still--because, said she to herself, "he'll tell 4971 about me tearing the picture sure. I wouldn't say a word, not to save 4972 his life!" 4973 4974 Tom took his whipping and went back to his seat not at all 4975 broken-hearted, for he thought it was possible that he had unknowingly 4976 upset the ink on the spelling-book himself, in some skylarking bout--he 4977 had denied it for form's sake and because it was custom, and had stuck 4978 to the denial from principle. 4979 4980 A whole hour drifted by, the master sat nodding in his throne, the air 4981 was drowsy with the hum of study. By and by, Mr. Dobbins straightened 4982 himself up, yawned, then unlocked his desk, and reached for his book, 4983 but seemed undecided whether to take it out or leave it. Most of the 4984 pupils glanced up languidly, but there were two among them that watched 4985 his movements with intent eyes. Mr. Dobbins fingered his book absently 4986 for a while, then took it out and settled himself in his chair to read! 4987 Tom shot a glance at Becky. He had seen a hunted and helpless rabbit 4988 look as she did, with a gun levelled at its head. Instantly he forgot 4989 his quarrel with her. Quick--something must be done! done in a flash, 4990 too! But the very imminence of the emergency paralyzed his invention. 4991 Good!--he had an inspiration! He would run and snatch the book, spring 4992 through the door and fly. But his resolution shook for one little 4993 instant, and the chance was lost--the master opened the volume. If Tom 4994 only had the wasted opportunity back again! Too late. There was no help 4995 for Becky now, he said. The next moment the master faced the school. 4996 Every eye sank under his gaze. There was that in it which smote even 4997 the innocent with fear. There was silence while one might count ten 4998 --the master was gathering his wrath. Then he spoke: "Who tore this book?" 4999 5000 There was not a sound. One could have heard a pin drop. The stillness 5001 continued; the master searched face after face for signs of guilt. 5002 5003 "Benjamin Rogers, did you tear this book?" 5004 5005 A denial. Another pause. 5006 5007 "Joseph Harper, did you?" 5008 5009 Another denial. Tom's uneasiness grew more and more intense under the 5010 slow torture of these proceedings. The master scanned the ranks of 5011 boys--considered a while, then turned to the girls: 5012 5013 "Amy Lawrence?" 5014 5015 A shake of the head. 5016 5017 "Gracie Miller?" 5018 5019 The same sign. 5020 5021 "Susan Harper, did you do this?" 5022 5023 Another negative. The next girl was Becky Thatcher. Tom was trembling 5024 from head to foot with excitement and a sense of the hopelessness of 5025 the situation. 5026 5027 "Rebecca Thatcher" [Tom glanced at her face--it was white with terror] 5028 --"did you tear--no, look me in the face" [her hands rose in appeal] 5029 --"did you tear this book?" 5030 5031 A thought shot like lightning through Tom's brain. He sprang to his 5032 feet and shouted--"I done it!" 5033 5034 The school stared in perplexity at this incredible folly. Tom stood a 5035 moment, to gather his dismembered faculties; and when he stepped 5036 forward to go to his punishment the surprise, the gratitude, the 5037 adoration that shone upon him out of poor Becky's eyes seemed pay 5038 enough for a hundred floggings. Inspired by the splendor of his own 5039 act, he took without an outcry the most merciless flaying that even Mr. 5040 Dobbins had ever administered; and also received with indifference the 5041 added cruelty of a command to remain two hours after school should be 5042 dismissed--for he knew who would wait for him outside till his 5043 captivity was done, and not count the tedious time as loss, either. 5044 5045 Tom went to bed that night planning vengeance against Alfred Temple; 5046 for with shame and repentance Becky had told him all, not forgetting 5047 her own treachery; but even the longing for vengeance had to give way, 5048 soon, to pleasanter musings, and he fell asleep at last with Becky's 5049 latest words lingering dreamily in his ear-- 5050 5051 "Tom, how COULD you be so noble!" 5052 5053 5054 5055 CHAPTER XXI 5056 5057 VACATION was approaching. The schoolmaster, always severe, grew 5058 severer and more exacting than ever, for he wanted the school to make a 5059 good showing on "Examination" day. His rod and his ferule were seldom 5060 idle now--at least among the smaller pupils. Only the biggest boys, and 5061 young ladies of eighteen and twenty, escaped lashing. Mr. Dobbins' 5062 lashings were very vigorous ones, too; for although he carried, under 5063 his wig, a perfectly bald and shiny head, he had only reached middle 5064 age, and there was no sign of feebleness in his muscle. As the great 5065 day approached, all the tyranny that was in him came to the surface; he 5066 seemed to take a vindictive pleasure in punishing the least 5067 shortcomings. The consequence was, that the smaller boys spent their 5068 days in terror and suffering and their nights in plotting revenge. They 5069 threw away no opportunity to do the master a mischief. But he kept 5070 ahead all the time. The retribution that followed every vengeful 5071 success was so sweeping and majestic that the boys always retired from 5072 the field badly worsted. At last they conspired together and hit upon a 5073 plan that promised a dazzling victory. They swore in the sign-painter's 5074 boy, told him the scheme, and asked his help. He had his own reasons 5075 for being delighted, for the master boarded in his father's family and 5076 had given the boy ample cause to hate him. The master's wife would go 5077 on a visit to the country in a few days, and there would be nothing to 5078 interfere with the plan; the master always prepared himself for great 5079 occasions by getting pretty well fuddled, and the sign-painter's boy 5080 said that when the dominie had reached the proper condition on 5081 Examination Evening he would "manage the thing" while he napped in his 5082 chair; then he would have him awakened at the right time and hurried 5083 away to school. 5084 5085 In the fulness of time the interesting occasion arrived. At eight in 5086 the evening the schoolhouse was brilliantly lighted, and adorned with 5087 wreaths and festoons of foliage and flowers. The master sat throned in 5088 his great chair upon a raised platform, with his blackboard behind him. 5089 He was looking tolerably mellow. Three rows of benches on each side and 5090 six rows in front of him were occupied by the dignitaries of the town 5091 and by the parents of the pupils. To his left, back of the rows of 5092 citizens, was a spacious temporary platform upon which were seated the 5093 scholars who were to take part in the exercises of the evening; rows of 5094 small boys, washed and dressed to an intolerable state of discomfort; 5095 rows of gawky big boys; snowbanks of girls and young ladies clad in 5096 lawn and muslin and conspicuously conscious of their bare arms, their 5097 grandmothers' ancient trinkets, their bits of pink and blue ribbon and 5098 the flowers in their hair. All the rest of the house was filled with 5099 non-participating scholars. 5100 5101 The exercises began. A very little boy stood up and sheepishly 5102 recited, "You'd scarce expect one of my age to speak in public on the 5103 stage," etc.--accompanying himself with the painfully exact and 5104 spasmodic gestures which a machine might have used--supposing the 5105 machine to be a trifle out of order. But he got through safely, though 5106 cruelly scared, and got a fine round of applause when he made his 5107 manufactured bow and retired. 5108 5109 A little shamefaced girl lisped, "Mary had a little lamb," etc., 5110 performed a compassion-inspiring curtsy, got her meed of applause, and 5111 sat down flushed and happy. 5112 5113 Tom Sawyer stepped forward with conceited confidence and soared into 5114 the unquenchable and indestructible "Give me liberty or give me death" 5115 speech, with fine fury and frantic gesticulation, and broke down in the 5116 middle of it. A ghastly stage-fright seized him, his legs quaked under 5117 him and he was like to choke. True, he had the manifest sympathy of the 5118 house but he had the house's silence, too, which was even worse than 5119 its sympathy. The master frowned, and this completed the disaster. Tom 5120 struggled awhile and then retired, utterly defeated. There was a weak 5121 attempt at applause, but it died early. 5122 5123 "The Boy Stood on the Burning Deck" followed; also "The Assyrian Came 5124 Down," and other declamatory gems. Then there were reading exercises, 5125 and a spelling fight. The meagre Latin class recited with honor. The 5126 prime feature of the evening was in order, now--original "compositions" 5127 by the young ladies. Each in her turn stepped forward to the edge of 5128 the platform, cleared her throat, held up her manuscript (tied with 5129 dainty ribbon), and proceeded to read, with labored attention to 5130 "expression" and punctuation. The themes were the same that had been 5131 illuminated upon similar occasions by their mothers before them, their 5132 grandmothers, and doubtless all their ancestors in the female line 5133 clear back to the Crusades. "Friendship" was one; "Memories of Other 5134 Days"; "Religion in History"; "Dream Land"; "The Advantages of 5135 Culture"; "Forms of Political Government Compared and Contrasted"; 5136 "Melancholy"; "Filial Love"; "Heart Longings," etc., etc. 5137 5138 A prevalent feature in these compositions was a nursed and petted 5139 melancholy; another was a wasteful and opulent gush of "fine language"; 5140 another was a tendency to lug in by the ears particularly prized words 5141 and phrases until they were worn entirely out; and a peculiarity that 5142 conspicuously marked and marred them was the inveterate and intolerable 5143 sermon that wagged its crippled tail at the end of each and every one 5144 of them. No matter what the subject might be, a brain-racking effort 5145 was made to squirm it into some aspect or other that the moral and 5146 religious mind could contemplate with edification. The glaring 5147 insincerity of these sermons was not sufficient to compass the 5148 banishment of the fashion from the schools, and it is not sufficient 5149 to-day; it never will be sufficient while the world stands, perhaps. 5150 There is no school in all our land where the young ladies do not feel 5151 obliged to close their compositions with a sermon; and you will find 5152 that the sermon of the most frivolous and the least religious girl in 5153 the school is always the longest and the most relentlessly pious. But 5154 enough of this. Homely truth is unpalatable. 5155 5156 Let us return to the "Examination." The first composition that was 5157 read was one entitled "Is this, then, Life?" Perhaps the reader can 5158 endure an extract from it: 5159 5160 "In the common walks of life, with what delightful 5161 emotions does the youthful mind look forward to some 5162 anticipated scene of festivity! Imagination is busy 5163 sketching rose-tinted pictures of joy. In fancy, the 5164 voluptuous votary of fashion sees herself amid the 5165 festive throng, 'the observed of all observers.' Her 5166 graceful form, arrayed in snowy robes, is whirling 5167 through the mazes of the joyous dance; her eye is 5168 brightest, her step is lightest in the gay assembly. 5169 5170 "In such delicious fancies time quickly glides by, 5171 and the welcome hour arrives for her entrance into 5172 the Elysian world, of which she has had such bright 5173 dreams. How fairy-like does everything appear to 5174 her enchanted vision! Each new scene is more charming 5175 than the last. But after a while she finds that 5176 beneath this goodly exterior, all is vanity, the 5177 flattery which once charmed her soul, now grates 5178 harshly upon her ear; the ball-room has lost its 5179 charms; and with wasted health and imbittered heart, 5180 she turns away with the conviction that earthly 5181 pleasures cannot satisfy the longings of the soul!" 5182 5183 And so forth and so on. There was a buzz of gratification from time to 5184 time during the reading, accompanied by whispered ejaculations of "How 5185 sweet!" "How eloquent!" "So true!" etc., and after the thing had closed 5186 with a peculiarly afflicting sermon the applause was enthusiastic. 5187 5188 Then arose a slim, melancholy girl, whose face had the "interesting" 5189 paleness that comes of pills and indigestion, and read a "poem." Two 5190 stanzas of it will do: 5191 5192 "A MISSOURI MAIDEN'S FAREWELL TO ALABAMA 5193 5194 "Alabama, good-bye! I love thee well! 5195 But yet for a while do I leave thee now! 5196 Sad, yes, sad thoughts of thee my heart doth swell, 5197 And burning recollections throng my brow! 5198 For I have wandered through thy flowery woods; 5199 Have roamed and read near Tallapoosa's stream; 5200 Have listened to Tallassee's warring floods, 5201 And wooed on Coosa's side Aurora's beam. 5202 5203 "Yet shame I not to bear an o'er-full heart, 5204 Nor blush to turn behind my tearful eyes; 5205 'Tis from no stranger land I now must part, 5206 'Tis to no strangers left I yield these sighs. 5207 Welcome and home were mine within this State, 5208 Whose vales I leave--whose spires fade fast from me 5209 And cold must be mine eyes, and heart, and tete, 5210 When, dear Alabama! they turn cold on thee!" 5211 5212 There were very few there who knew what "tete" meant, but the poem was 5213 very satisfactory, nevertheless. 5214 5215 Next appeared a dark-complexioned, black-eyed, black-haired young 5216 lady, who paused an impressive moment, assumed a tragic expression, and 5217 began to read in a measured, solemn tone: 5218 5219 "A VISION 5220 5221 "Dark and tempestuous was night. Around the 5222 throne on high not a single star quivered; but 5223 the deep intonations of the heavy thunder 5224 constantly vibrated upon the ear; whilst the 5225 terrific lightning revelled in angry mood 5226 through the cloudy chambers of heaven, seeming 5227 to scorn the power exerted over its terror by 5228 the illustrious Franklin! Even the boisterous 5229 winds unanimously came forth from their mystic 5230 homes, and blustered about as if to enhance by 5231 their aid the wildness of the scene. 5232 5233 "At such a time, so dark, so dreary, for human 5234 sympathy my very spirit sighed; but instead thereof, 5235 5236 "'My dearest friend, my counsellor, my comforter 5237 and guide--My joy in grief, my second bliss 5238 in joy,' came to my side. She moved like one of 5239 those bright beings pictured in the sunny walks 5240 of fancy's Eden by the romantic and young, a 5241 queen of beauty unadorned save by her own 5242 transcendent loveliness. So soft was her step, it 5243 failed to make even a sound, and but for the 5244 magical thrill imparted by her genial touch, as 5245 other unobtrusive beauties, she would have glided 5246 away un-perceived--unsought. A strange sadness 5247 rested upon her features, like icy tears upon 5248 the robe of December, as she pointed to the 5249 contending elements without, and bade me contemplate 5250 the two beings presented." 5251 5252 This nightmare occupied some ten pages of manuscript and wound up with 5253 a sermon so destructive of all hope to non-Presbyterians that it took 5254 the first prize. This composition was considered to be the very finest 5255 effort of the evening. The mayor of the village, in delivering the 5256 prize to the author of it, made a warm speech in which he said that it 5257 was by far the most "eloquent" thing he had ever listened to, and that 5258 Daniel Webster himself might well be proud of it. 5259 5260 It may be remarked, in passing, that the number of compositions in 5261 which the word "beauteous" was over-fondled, and human experience 5262 referred to as "life's page," was up to the usual average. 5263 5264 Now the master, mellow almost to the verge of geniality, put his chair 5265 aside, turned his back to the audience, and began to draw a map of 5266 America on the blackboard, to exercise the geography class upon. But he 5267 made a sad business of it with his unsteady hand, and a smothered 5268 titter rippled over the house. He knew what the matter was, and set 5269 himself to right it. He sponged out lines and remade them; but he only 5270 distorted them more than ever, and the tittering was more pronounced. 5271 He threw his entire attention upon his work, now, as if determined not 5272 to be put down by the mirth. He felt that all eyes were fastened upon 5273 him; he imagined he was succeeding, and yet the tittering continued; it 5274 even manifestly increased. And well it might. There was a garret above, 5275 pierced with a scuttle over his head; and down through this scuttle 5276 came a cat, suspended around the haunches by a string; she had a rag 5277 tied about her head and jaws to keep her from mewing; as she slowly 5278 descended she curved upward and clawed at the string, she swung 5279 downward and clawed at the intangible air. The tittering rose higher 5280 and higher--the cat was within six inches of the absorbed teacher's 5281 head--down, down, a little lower, and she grabbed his wig with her 5282 desperate claws, clung to it, and was snatched up into the garret in an 5283 instant with her trophy still in her possession! And how the light did 5284 blaze abroad from the master's bald pate--for the sign-painter's boy 5285 had GILDED it! 5286 5287 That broke up the meeting. The boys were avenged. Vacation had come. 5288 5289 NOTE:--The pretended "compositions" quoted in 5290 this chapter are taken without alteration from a 5291 volume entitled "Prose and Poetry, by a Western 5292 Lady"--but they are exactly and precisely after 5293 the schoolgirl pattern, and hence are much 5294 happier than any mere imitations could be. 5295 5296 5297 5298 CHAPTER XXII 5299 5300 TOM joined the new order of Cadets of Temperance, being attracted by 5301 the showy character of their "regalia." He promised to abstain from 5302 smoking, chewing, and profanity as long as he remained a member. Now he 5303 found out a new thing--namely, that to promise not to do a thing is the 5304 surest way in the world to make a body want to go and do that very 5305 thing. Tom soon found himself tormented with a desire to drink and 5306 swear; the desire grew to be so intense that nothing but the hope of a 5307 chance to display himself in his red sash kept him from withdrawing 5308 from the order. Fourth of July was coming; but he soon gave that up 5309 --gave it up before he had worn his shackles over forty-eight hours--and 5310 fixed his hopes upon old Judge Frazer, justice of the peace, who was 5311 apparently on his deathbed and would have a big public funeral, since 5312 he was so high an official. During three days Tom was deeply concerned 5313 about the Judge's condition and hungry for news of it. Sometimes his 5314 hopes ran high--so high that he would venture to get out his regalia 5315 and practise before the looking-glass. But the Judge had a most 5316 discouraging way of fluctuating. At last he was pronounced upon the 5317 mend--and then convalescent. Tom was disgusted; and felt a sense of 5318 injury, too. He handed in his resignation at once--and that night the 5319 Judge suffered a relapse and died. Tom resolved that he would never 5320 trust a man like that again. 5321 5322 The funeral was a fine thing. The Cadets paraded in a style calculated 5323 to kill the late member with envy. Tom was a free boy again, however 5324 --there was something in that. He could drink and swear, now--but found 5325 to his surprise that he did not want to. The simple fact that he could, 5326 took the desire away, and the charm of it. 5327 5328 Tom presently wondered to find that his coveted vacation was beginning 5329 to hang a little heavily on his hands. 5330 5331 He attempted a diary--but nothing happened during three days, and so 5332 he abandoned it. 5333 5334 The first of all the negro minstrel shows came to town, and made a 5335 sensation. Tom and Joe Harper got up a band of performers and were 5336 happy for two days. 5337 5338 Even the Glorious Fourth was in some sense a failure, for it rained 5339 hard, there was no procession in consequence, and the greatest man in 5340 the world (as Tom supposed), Mr. Benton, an actual United States 5341 Senator, proved an overwhelming disappointment--for he was not 5342 twenty-five feet high, nor even anywhere in the neighborhood of it. 5343 5344 A circus came. The boys played circus for three days afterward in 5345 tents made of rag carpeting--admission, three pins for boys, two for 5346 girls--and then circusing was abandoned. 5347 5348 A phrenologist and a mesmerizer came--and went again and left the 5349 village duller and drearier than ever. 5350 5351 There were some boys-and-girls' parties, but they were so few and so 5352 delightful that they only made the aching voids between ache the harder. 5353 5354 Becky Thatcher was gone to her Constantinople home to stay with her 5355 parents during vacation--so there was no bright side to life anywhere. 5356 5357 The dreadful secret of the murder was a chronic misery. It was a very 5358 cancer for permanency and pain. 5359 5360 Then came the measles. 5361 5362 During two long weeks Tom lay a prisoner, dead to the world and its 5363 happenings. He was very ill, he was interested in nothing. When he got 5364 upon his feet at last and moved feebly down-town, a melancholy change 5365 had come over everything and every creature. There had been a 5366 "revival," and everybody had "got religion," not only the adults, but 5367 even the boys and girls. Tom went about, hoping against hope for the 5368 sight of one blessed sinful face, but disappointment crossed him 5369 everywhere. He found Joe Harper studying a Testament, and turned sadly 5370 away from the depressing spectacle. He sought Ben Rogers, and found him 5371 visiting the poor with a basket of tracts. He hunted up Jim Hollis, who 5372 called his attention to the precious blessing of his late measles as a 5373 warning. Every boy he encountered added another ton to his depression; 5374 and when, in desperation, he flew for refuge at last to the bosom of 5375 Huckleberry Finn and was received with a Scriptural quotation, his 5376 heart broke and he crept home and to bed realizing that he alone of all 5377 the town was lost, forever and forever. 5378 5379 And that night there came on a terrific storm, with driving rain, 5380 awful claps of thunder and blinding sheets of lightning. He covered his 5381 head with the bedclothes and waited in a horror of suspense for his 5382 doom; for he had not the shadow of a doubt that all this hubbub was 5383 about him. He believed he had taxed the forbearance of the powers above 5384 to the extremity of endurance and that this was the result. It might 5385 have seemed to him a waste of pomp and ammunition to kill a bug with a 5386 battery of artillery, but there seemed nothing incongruous about the 5387 getting up such an expensive thunderstorm as this to knock the turf 5388 from under an insect like himself. 5389 5390 By and by the tempest spent itself and died without accomplishing its 5391 object. The boy's first impulse was to be grateful, and reform. His 5392 second was to wait--for there might not be any more storms. 5393 5394 The next day the doctors were back; Tom had relapsed. The three weeks 5395 he spent on his back this time seemed an entire age. When he got abroad 5396 at last he was hardly grateful that he had been spared, remembering how 5397 lonely was his estate, how companionless and forlorn he was. He drifted 5398 listlessly down the street and found Jim Hollis acting as judge in a 5399 juvenile court that was trying a cat for murder, in the presence of her 5400 victim, a bird. He found Joe Harper and Huck Finn up an alley eating a 5401 stolen melon. Poor lads! they--like Tom--had suffered a relapse. 5402 5403 5404 5405 CHAPTER XXIII 5406 5407 AT last the sleepy atmosphere was stirred--and vigorously: the murder 5408 trial came on in the court. It became the absorbing topic of village 5409 talk immediately. Tom could not get away from it. Every reference to 5410 the murder sent a shudder to his heart, for his troubled conscience and 5411 fears almost persuaded him that these remarks were put forth in his 5412 hearing as "feelers"; he did not see how he could be suspected of 5413 knowing anything about the murder, but still he could not be 5414 comfortable in the midst of this gossip. It kept him in a cold shiver 5415 all the time. He took Huck to a lonely place to have a talk with him. 5416 It would be some relief to unseal his tongue for a little while; to 5417 divide his burden of distress with another sufferer. Moreover, he 5418 wanted to assure himself that Huck had remained discreet. 5419 5420 "Huck, have you ever told anybody about--that?" 5421 5422 "'Bout what?" 5423 5424 "You know what." 5425 5426 "Oh--'course I haven't." 5427 5428 "Never a word?" 5429 5430 "Never a solitary word, so help me. What makes you ask?" 5431 5432 "Well, I was afeard." 5433 5434 "Why, Tom Sawyer, we wouldn't be alive two days if that got found out. 5435 YOU know that." 5436 5437 Tom felt more comfortable. After a pause: 5438 5439 "Huck, they couldn't anybody get you to tell, could they?" 5440 5441 "Get me to tell? Why, if I wanted that half-breed devil to drownd me 5442 they could get me to tell. They ain't no different way." 5443 5444 "Well, that's all right, then. I reckon we're safe as long as we keep 5445 mum. But let's swear again, anyway. It's more surer." 5446 5447 "I'm agreed." 5448 5449 So they swore again with dread solemnities. 5450 5451 "What is the talk around, Huck? I've heard a power of it." 5452 5453 "Talk? Well, it's just Muff Potter, Muff Potter, Muff Potter all the 5454 time. It keeps me in a sweat, constant, so's I want to hide som'ers." 5455 5456 "That's just the same way they go on round me. I reckon he's a goner. 5457 Don't you feel sorry for him, sometimes?" 5458 5459 "Most always--most always. He ain't no account; but then he hain't 5460 ever done anything to hurt anybody. Just fishes a little, to get money 5461 to get drunk on--and loafs around considerable; but lord, we all do 5462 that--leastways most of us--preachers and such like. But he's kind of 5463 good--he give me half a fish, once, when there warn't enough for two; 5464 and lots of times he's kind of stood by me when I was out of luck." 5465 5466 "Well, he's mended kites for me, Huck, and knitted hooks on to my 5467 line. I wish we could get him out of there." 5468 5469 "My! we couldn't get him out, Tom. And besides, 'twouldn't do any 5470 good; they'd ketch him again." 5471 5472 "Yes--so they would. But I hate to hear 'em abuse him so like the 5473 dickens when he never done--that." 5474 5475 "I do too, Tom. Lord, I hear 'em say he's the bloodiest looking 5476 villain in this country, and they wonder he wasn't ever hung before." 5477 5478 "Yes, they talk like that, all the time. I've heard 'em say that if he 5479 was to get free they'd lynch him." 5480 5481 "And they'd do it, too." 5482 5483 The boys had a long talk, but it brought them little comfort. As the 5484 twilight drew on, they found themselves hanging about the neighborhood 5485 of the little isolated jail, perhaps with an undefined hope that 5486 something would happen that might clear away their difficulties. But 5487 nothing happened; there seemed to be no angels or fairies interested in 5488 this luckless captive. 5489 5490 The boys did as they had often done before--went to the cell grating 5491 and gave Potter some tobacco and matches. He was on the ground floor 5492 and there were no guards. 5493 5494 His gratitude for their gifts had always smote their consciences 5495 before--it cut deeper than ever, this time. They felt cowardly and 5496 treacherous to the last degree when Potter said: 5497 5498 "You've been mighty good to me, boys--better'n anybody else in this 5499 town. And I don't forget it, I don't. Often I says to myself, says I, 5500 'I used to mend all the boys' kites and things, and show 'em where the 5501 good fishin' places was, and befriend 'em what I could, and now they've 5502 all forgot old Muff when he's in trouble; but Tom don't, and Huck 5503 don't--THEY don't forget him, says I, 'and I don't forget them.' Well, 5504 boys, I done an awful thing--drunk and crazy at the time--that's the 5505 only way I account for it--and now I got to swing for it, and it's 5506 right. Right, and BEST, too, I reckon--hope so, anyway. Well, we won't 5507 talk about that. I don't want to make YOU feel bad; you've befriended 5508 me. But what I want to say, is, don't YOU ever get drunk--then you won't 5509 ever get here. Stand a litter furder west--so--that's it; it's a prime 5510 comfort to see faces that's friendly when a body's in such a muck of 5511 trouble, and there don't none come here but yourn. Good friendly 5512 faces--good friendly faces. Git up on one another's backs and let me 5513 touch 'em. That's it. Shake hands--yourn'll come through the bars, but 5514 mine's too big. Little hands, and weak--but they've helped Muff Potter 5515 a power, and they'd help him more if they could." 5516 5517 Tom went home miserable, and his dreams that night were full of 5518 horrors. The next day and the day after, he hung about the court-room, 5519 drawn by an almost irresistible impulse to go in, but forcing himself 5520 to stay out. Huck was having the same experience. They studiously 5521 avoided each other. Each wandered away, from time to time, but the same 5522 dismal fascination always brought them back presently. Tom kept his 5523 ears open when idlers sauntered out of the court-room, but invariably 5524 heard distressing news--the toils were closing more and more 5525 relentlessly around poor Potter. At the end of the second day the 5526 village talk was to the effect that Injun Joe's evidence stood firm and 5527 unshaken, and that there was not the slightest question as to what the 5528 jury's verdict would be. 5529 5530 Tom was out late, that night, and came to bed through the window. He 5531 was in a tremendous state of excitement. It was hours before he got to 5532 sleep. All the village flocked to the court-house the next morning, for 5533 this was to be the great day. Both sexes were about equally represented 5534 in the packed audience. After a long wait the jury filed in and took 5535 their places; shortly afterward, Potter, pale and haggard, timid and 5536 hopeless, was brought in, with chains upon him, and seated where all 5537 the curious eyes could stare at him; no less conspicuous was Injun Joe, 5538 stolid as ever. There was another pause, and then the judge arrived and 5539 the sheriff proclaimed the opening of the court. The usual whisperings 5540 among the lawyers and gathering together of papers followed. These 5541 details and accompanying delays worked up an atmosphere of preparation 5542 that was as impressive as it was fascinating. 5543 5544 Now a witness was called who testified that he found Muff Potter 5545 washing in the brook, at an early hour of the morning that the murder 5546 was discovered, and that he immediately sneaked away. After some 5547 further questioning, counsel for the prosecution said: 5548 5549 "Take the witness." 5550 5551 The prisoner raised his eyes for a moment, but dropped them again when 5552 his own counsel said: 5553 5554 "I have no questions to ask him." 5555 5556 The next witness proved the finding of the knife near the corpse. 5557 Counsel for the prosecution said: 5558 5559 "Take the witness." 5560 5561 "I have no questions to ask him," Potter's lawyer replied. 5562 5563 A third witness swore he had often seen the knife in Potter's 5564 possession. 5565 5566 "Take the witness." 5567 5568 Counsel for Potter declined to question him. The faces of the audience 5569 began to betray annoyance. Did this attorney mean to throw away his 5570 client's life without an effort? 5571 5572 Several witnesses deposed concerning Potter's guilty behavior when 5573 brought to the scene of the murder. They were allowed to leave the 5574 stand without being cross-questioned. 5575 5576 Every detail of the damaging circumstances that occurred in the 5577 graveyard upon that morning which all present remembered so well was 5578 brought out by credible witnesses, but none of them were cross-examined 5579 by Potter's lawyer. The perplexity and dissatisfaction of the house 5580 expressed itself in murmurs and provoked a reproof from the bench. 5581 Counsel for the prosecution now said: 5582 5583 "By the oaths of citizens whose simple word is above suspicion, we 5584 have fastened this awful crime, beyond all possibility of question, 5585 upon the unhappy prisoner at the bar. We rest our case here." 5586 5587 A groan escaped from poor Potter, and he put his face in his hands and 5588 rocked his body softly to and fro, while a painful silence reigned in 5589 the court-room. Many men were moved, and many women's compassion 5590 testified itself in tears. Counsel for the defence rose and said: 5591 5592 "Your honor, in our remarks at the opening of this trial, we 5593 foreshadowed our purpose to prove that our client did this fearful deed 5594 while under the influence of a blind and irresponsible delirium 5595 produced by drink. We have changed our mind. We shall not offer that 5596 plea." [Then to the clerk:] "Call Thomas Sawyer!" 5597 5598 A puzzled amazement awoke in every face in the house, not even 5599 excepting Potter's. Every eye fastened itself with wondering interest 5600 upon Tom as he rose and took his place upon the stand. The boy looked 5601 wild enough, for he was badly scared. The oath was administered. 5602 5603 "Thomas Sawyer, where were you on the seventeenth of June, about the 5604 hour of midnight?" 5605 5606 Tom glanced at Injun Joe's iron face and his tongue failed him. The 5607 audience listened breathless, but the words refused to come. After a 5608 few moments, however, the boy got a little of his strength back, and 5609 managed to put enough of it into his voice to make part of the house 5610 hear: 5611 5612 "In the graveyard!" 5613 5614 "A little bit louder, please. Don't be afraid. You were--" 5615 5616 "In the graveyard." 5617 5618 A contemptuous smile flitted across Injun Joe's face. 5619 5620 "Were you anywhere near Horse Williams' grave?" 5621 5622 "Yes, sir." 5623 5624 "Speak up--just a trifle louder. How near were you?" 5625 5626 "Near as I am to you." 5627 5628 "Were you hidden, or not?" 5629 5630 "I was hid." 5631 5632 "Where?" 5633 5634 "Behind the elms that's on the edge of the grave." 5635 5636 Injun Joe gave a barely perceptible start. 5637 5638 "Any one with you?" 5639 5640 "Yes, sir. I went there with--" 5641 5642 "Wait--wait a moment. Never mind mentioning your companion's name. We 5643 will produce him at the proper time. Did you carry anything there with 5644 you." 5645 5646 Tom hesitated and looked confused. 5647 5648 "Speak out, my boy--don't be diffident. The truth is always 5649 respectable. What did you take there?" 5650 5651 "Only a--a--dead cat." 5652 5653 There was a ripple of mirth, which the court checked. 5654 5655 "We will produce the skeleton of that cat. Now, my boy, tell us 5656 everything that occurred--tell it in your own way--don't skip anything, 5657 and don't be afraid." 5658 5659 Tom began--hesitatingly at first, but as he warmed to his subject his 5660 words flowed more and more easily; in a little while every sound ceased 5661 but his own voice; every eye fixed itself upon him; with parted lips 5662 and bated breath the audience hung upon his words, taking no note of 5663 time, rapt in the ghastly fascinations of the tale. The strain upon 5664 pent emotion reached its climax when the boy said: 5665 5666 "--and as the doctor fetched the board around and Muff Potter fell, 5667 Injun Joe jumped with the knife and--" 5668 5669 Crash! Quick as lightning the half-breed sprang for a window, tore his 5670 way through all opposers, and was gone! 5671 5672 5673 5674 CHAPTER XXIV 5675 5676 TOM was a glittering hero once more--the pet of the old, the envy of 5677 the young. His name even went into immortal print, for the village 5678 paper magnified him. There were some that believed he would be 5679 President, yet, if he escaped hanging. 5680 5681 As usual, the fickle, unreasoning world took Muff Potter to its bosom 5682 and fondled him as lavishly as it had abused him before. But that sort 5683 of conduct is to the world's credit; therefore it is not well to find 5684 fault with it. 5685 5686 Tom's days were days of splendor and exultation to him, but his nights 5687 were seasons of horror. Injun Joe infested all his dreams, and always 5688 with doom in his eye. Hardly any temptation could persuade the boy to 5689 stir abroad after nightfall. Poor Huck was in the same state of 5690 wretchedness and terror, for Tom had told the whole story to the lawyer 5691 the night before the great day of the trial, and Huck was sore afraid 5692 that his share in the business might leak out, yet, notwithstanding 5693 Injun Joe's flight had saved him the suffering of testifying in court. 5694 The poor fellow had got the attorney to promise secrecy, but what of 5695 that? Since Tom's harassed conscience had managed to drive him to the 5696 lawyer's house by night and wring a dread tale from lips that had been 5697 sealed with the dismalest and most formidable of oaths, Huck's 5698 confidence in the human race was well-nigh obliterated. 5699 5700 Daily Muff Potter's gratitude made Tom glad he had spoken; but nightly 5701 he wished he had sealed up his tongue. 5702 5703 Half the time Tom was afraid Injun Joe would never be captured; the 5704 other half he was afraid he would be. He felt sure he never could draw 5705 a safe breath again until that man was dead and he had seen the corpse. 5706 5707 Rewards had been offered, the country had been scoured, but no Injun 5708 Joe was found. One of those omniscient and awe-inspiring marvels, a 5709 detective, came up from St. Louis, moused around, shook his head, 5710 looked wise, and made that sort of astounding success which members of 5711 that craft usually achieve. That is to say, he "found a clew." But you 5712 can't hang a "clew" for murder, and so after that detective had got 5713 through and gone home, Tom felt just as insecure as he was before. 5714 5715 The slow days drifted on, and each left behind it a slightly lightened 5716 weight of apprehension. 5717 5718 5719 5720 CHAPTER XXV 5721 5722 THERE comes a time in every rightly-constructed boy's life when he has 5723 a raging desire to go somewhere and dig for hidden treasure. This 5724 desire suddenly came upon Tom one day. He sallied out to find Joe 5725 Harper, but failed of success. Next he sought Ben Rogers; he had gone 5726 fishing. Presently he stumbled upon Huck Finn the Red-Handed. Huck 5727 would answer. Tom took him to a private place and opened the matter to 5728 him confidentially. Huck was willing. Huck was always willing to take a 5729 hand in any enterprise that offered entertainment and required no 5730 capital, for he had a troublesome superabundance of that sort of time 5731 which is not money. "Where'll we dig?" said Huck. 5732 5733 "Oh, most anywhere." 5734 5735 "Why, is it hid all around?" 5736 5737 "No, indeed it ain't. It's hid in mighty particular places, Huck 5738 --sometimes on islands, sometimes in rotten chests under the end of a 5739 limb of an old dead tree, just where the shadow falls at midnight; but 5740 mostly under the floor in ha'nted houses." 5741 5742 "Who hides it?" 5743 5744 "Why, robbers, of course--who'd you reckon? Sunday-school 5745 sup'rintendents?" 5746 5747 "I don't know. If 'twas mine I wouldn't hide it; I'd spend it and have 5748 a good time." 5749 5750 "So would I. But robbers don't do that way. They always hide it and 5751 leave it there." 5752 5753 "Don't they come after it any more?" 5754 5755 "No, they think they will, but they generally forget the marks, or 5756 else they die. Anyway, it lays there a long time and gets rusty; and by 5757 and by somebody finds an old yellow paper that tells how to find the 5758 marks--a paper that's got to be ciphered over about a week because it's 5759 mostly signs and hy'roglyphics." 5760 5761 "Hyro--which?" 5762 5763 "Hy'roglyphics--pictures and things, you know, that don't seem to mean 5764 anything." 5765 5766 "Have you got one of them papers, Tom?" 5767 5768 "No." 5769 5770 "Well then, how you going to find the marks?" 5771 5772 "I don't want any marks. They always bury it under a ha'nted house or 5773 on an island, or under a dead tree that's got one limb sticking out. 5774 Well, we've tried Jackson's Island a little, and we can try it again 5775 some time; and there's the old ha'nted house up the Still-House branch, 5776 and there's lots of dead-limb trees--dead loads of 'em." 5777 5778 "Is it under all of them?" 5779 5780 "How you talk! No!" 5781 5782 "Then how you going to know which one to go for?" 5783 5784 "Go for all of 'em!" 5785 5786 "Why, Tom, it'll take all summer." 5787 5788 "Well, what of that? Suppose you find a brass pot with a hundred 5789 dollars in it, all rusty and gray, or rotten chest full of di'monds. 5790 How's that?" 5791 5792 Huck's eyes glowed. 5793 5794 "That's bully. Plenty bully enough for me. Just you gimme the hundred 5795 dollars and I don't want no di'monds." 5796 5797 "All right. But I bet you I ain't going to throw off on di'monds. Some 5798 of 'em's worth twenty dollars apiece--there ain't any, hardly, but's 5799 worth six bits or a dollar." 5800 5801 "No! Is that so?" 5802 5803 "Cert'nly--anybody'll tell you so. Hain't you ever seen one, Huck?" 5804 5805 "Not as I remember." 5806 5807 "Oh, kings have slathers of them." 5808 5809 "Well, I don' know no kings, Tom." 5810 5811 "I reckon you don't. But if you was to go to Europe you'd see a raft 5812 of 'em hopping around." 5813 5814 "Do they hop?" 5815 5816 "Hop?--your granny! No!" 5817 5818 "Well, what did you say they did, for?" 5819 5820 "Shucks, I only meant you'd SEE 'em--not hopping, of course--what do 5821 they want to hop for?--but I mean you'd just see 'em--scattered around, 5822 you know, in a kind of a general way. Like that old humpbacked Richard." 5823 5824 "Richard? What's his other name?" 5825 5826 "He didn't have any other name. Kings don't have any but a given name." 5827 5828 "No?" 5829 5830 "But they don't." 5831 5832 "Well, if they like it, Tom, all right; but I don't want to be a king 5833 and have only just a given name, like a nigger. But say--where you 5834 going to dig first?" 5835 5836 "Well, I don't know. S'pose we tackle that old dead-limb tree on the 5837 hill t'other side of Still-House branch?" 5838 5839 "I'm agreed." 5840 5841 So they got a crippled pick and a shovel, and set out on their 5842 three-mile tramp. They arrived hot and panting, and threw themselves 5843 down in the shade of a neighboring elm to rest and have a smoke. 5844 5845 "I like this," said Tom. 5846 5847 "So do I." 5848 5849 "Say, Huck, if we find a treasure here, what you going to do with your 5850 share?" 5851 5852 "Well, I'll have pie and a glass of soda every day, and I'll go to 5853 every circus that comes along. I bet I'll have a gay time." 5854 5855 "Well, ain't you going to save any of it?" 5856 5857 "Save it? What for?" 5858 5859 "Why, so as to have something to live on, by and by." 5860 5861 "Oh, that ain't any use. Pap would come back to thish-yer town some 5862 day and get his claws on it if I didn't hurry up, and I tell you he'd 5863 clean it out pretty quick. What you going to do with yourn, Tom?" 5864 5865 "I'm going to buy a new drum, and a sure-'nough sword, and a red 5866 necktie and a bull pup, and get married." 5867 5868 "Married!" 5869 5870 "That's it." 5871 5872 "Tom, you--why, you ain't in your right mind." 5873 5874 "Wait--you'll see." 5875 5876 "Well, that's the foolishest thing you could do. Look at pap and my 5877 mother. Fight! Why, they used to fight all the time. I remember, mighty 5878 well." 5879 5880 "That ain't anything. The girl I'm going to marry won't fight." 5881 5882 "Tom, I reckon they're all alike. They'll all comb a body. Now you 5883 better think 'bout this awhile. I tell you you better. What's the name 5884 of the gal?" 5885 5886 "It ain't a gal at all--it's a girl." 5887 5888 "It's all the same, I reckon; some says gal, some says girl--both's 5889 right, like enough. Anyway, what's her name, Tom?" 5890 5891 "I'll tell you some time--not now." 5892 5893 "All right--that'll do. Only if you get married I'll be more lonesomer 5894 than ever." 5895 5896 "No you won't. You'll come and live with me. Now stir out of this and 5897 we'll go to digging." 5898 5899 They worked and sweated for half an hour. No result. They toiled 5900 another half-hour. Still no result. Huck said: 5901 5902 "Do they always bury it as deep as this?" 5903 5904 "Sometimes--not always. Not generally. I reckon we haven't got the 5905 right place." 5906 5907 So they chose a new spot and began again. The labor dragged a little, 5908 but still they made progress. They pegged away in silence for some 5909 time. Finally Huck leaned on his shovel, swabbed the beaded drops from 5910 his brow with his sleeve, and said: 5911 5912 "Where you going to dig next, after we get this one?" 5913 5914 "I reckon maybe we'll tackle the old tree that's over yonder on 5915 Cardiff Hill back of the widow's." 5916 5917 "I reckon that'll be a good one. But won't the widow take it away from 5918 us, Tom? It's on her land." 5919 5920 "SHE take it away! Maybe she'd like to try it once. Whoever finds one 5921 of these hid treasures, it belongs to him. It don't make any difference 5922 whose land it's on." 5923 5924 That was satisfactory. The work went on. By and by Huck said: 5925 5926 "Blame it, we must be in the wrong place again. What do you think?" 5927 5928 "It is mighty curious, Huck. I don't understand it. Sometimes witches 5929 interfere. I reckon maybe that's what's the trouble now." 5930 5931 "Shucks! Witches ain't got no power in the daytime." 5932 5933 "Well, that's so. I didn't think of that. Oh, I know what the matter 5934 is! What a blamed lot of fools we are! You got to find out where the 5935 shadow of the limb falls at midnight, and that's where you dig!" 5936 5937 "Then consound it, we've fooled away all this work for nothing. Now 5938 hang it all, we got to come back in the night. It's an awful long way. 5939 Can you get out?" 5940 5941 "I bet I will. We've got to do it to-night, too, because if somebody 5942 sees these holes they'll know in a minute what's here and they'll go 5943 for it." 5944 5945 "Well, I'll come around and maow to-night." 5946 5947 "All right. Let's hide the tools in the bushes." 5948 5949 The boys were there that night, about the appointed time. They sat in 5950 the shadow waiting. It was a lonely place, and an hour made solemn by 5951 old traditions. Spirits whispered in the rustling leaves, ghosts lurked 5952 in the murky nooks, the deep baying of a hound floated up out of the 5953 distance, an owl answered with his sepulchral note. The boys were 5954 subdued by these solemnities, and talked little. By and by they judged 5955 that twelve had come; they marked where the shadow fell, and began to 5956 dig. Their hopes commenced to rise. Their interest grew stronger, and 5957 their industry kept pace with it. The hole deepened and still deepened, 5958 but every time their hearts jumped to hear the pick strike upon 5959 something, they only suffered a new disappointment. It was only a stone 5960 or a chunk. At last Tom said: 5961 5962 "It ain't any use, Huck, we're wrong again." 5963 5964 "Well, but we CAN'T be wrong. We spotted the shadder to a dot." 5965 5966 "I know it, but then there's another thing." 5967 5968 "What's that?". 5969 5970 "Why, we only guessed at the time. Like enough it was too late or too 5971 early." 5972 5973 Huck dropped his shovel. 5974 5975 "That's it," said he. "That's the very trouble. We got to give this 5976 one up. We can't ever tell the right time, and besides this kind of 5977 thing's too awful, here this time of night with witches and ghosts 5978 a-fluttering around so. I feel as if something's behind me all the time; 5979 and I'm afeard to turn around, becuz maybe there's others in front 5980 a-waiting for a chance. I been creeping all over, ever since I got here." 5981 5982 "Well, I've been pretty much so, too, Huck. They most always put in a 5983 dead man when they bury a treasure under a tree, to look out for it." 5984 5985 "Lordy!" 5986 5987 "Yes, they do. I've always heard that." 5988 5989 "Tom, I don't like to fool around much where there's dead people. A 5990 body's bound to get into trouble with 'em, sure." 5991 5992 "I don't like to stir 'em up, either. S'pose this one here was to 5993 stick his skull out and say something!" 5994 5995 "Don't Tom! It's awful." 5996 5997 "Well, it just is. Huck, I don't feel comfortable a bit." 5998 5999 "Say, Tom, let's give this place up, and try somewheres else." 6000 6001 "All right, I reckon we better." 6002 6003 "What'll it be?" 6004 6005 Tom considered awhile; and then said: 6006 6007 "The ha'nted house. That's it!" 6008 6009 "Blame it, I don't like ha'nted houses, Tom. Why, they're a dern sight 6010 worse'n dead people. Dead people might talk, maybe, but they don't come 6011 sliding around in a shroud, when you ain't noticing, and peep over your 6012 shoulder all of a sudden and grit their teeth, the way a ghost does. I 6013 couldn't stand such a thing as that, Tom--nobody could." 6014 6015 "Yes, but, Huck, ghosts don't travel around only at night. They won't 6016 hender us from digging there in the daytime." 6017 6018 "Well, that's so. But you know mighty well people don't go about that 6019 ha'nted house in the day nor the night." 6020 6021 "Well, that's mostly because they don't like to go where a man's been 6022 murdered, anyway--but nothing's ever been seen around that house except 6023 in the night--just some blue lights slipping by the windows--no regular 6024 ghosts." 6025 6026 "Well, where you see one of them blue lights flickering around, Tom, 6027 you can bet there's a ghost mighty close behind it. It stands to 6028 reason. Becuz you know that they don't anybody but ghosts use 'em." 6029 6030 "Yes, that's so. But anyway they don't come around in the daytime, so 6031 what's the use of our being afeard?" 6032 6033 "Well, all right. We'll tackle the ha'nted house if you say so--but I 6034 reckon it's taking chances." 6035 6036 They had started down the hill by this time. There in the middle of 6037 the moonlit valley below them stood the "ha'nted" house, utterly 6038 isolated, its fences gone long ago, rank weeds smothering the very 6039 doorsteps, the chimney crumbled to ruin, the window-sashes vacant, a 6040 corner of the roof caved in. The boys gazed awhile, half expecting to 6041 see a blue light flit past a window; then talking in a low tone, as 6042 befitted the time and the circumstances, they struck far off to the 6043 right, to give the haunted house a wide berth, and took their way 6044 homeward through the woods that adorned the rearward side of Cardiff 6045 Hill. 6046 6047 6048 6049 CHAPTER XXVI 6050 6051 ABOUT noon the next day the boys arrived at the dead tree; they had 6052 come for their tools. Tom was impatient to go to the haunted house; 6053 Huck was measurably so, also--but suddenly said: 6054 6055 "Lookyhere, Tom, do you know what day it is?" 6056 6057 Tom mentally ran over the days of the week, and then quickly lifted 6058 his eyes with a startled look in them-- 6059 6060 "My! I never once thought of it, Huck!" 6061 6062 "Well, I didn't neither, but all at once it popped onto me that it was 6063 Friday." 6064 6065 "Blame it, a body can't be too careful, Huck. We might 'a' got into an 6066 awful scrape, tackling such a thing on a Friday." 6067 6068 "MIGHT! Better say we WOULD! There's some lucky days, maybe, but 6069 Friday ain't." 6070 6071 "Any fool knows that. I don't reckon YOU was the first that found it 6072 out, Huck." 6073 6074 "Well, I never said I was, did I? And Friday ain't all, neither. I had 6075 a rotten bad dream last night--dreampt about rats." 6076 6077 "No! Sure sign of trouble. Did they fight?" 6078 6079 "No." 6080 6081 "Well, that's good, Huck. When they don't fight it's only a sign that 6082 there's trouble around, you know. All we got to do is to look mighty 6083 sharp and keep out of it. We'll drop this thing for to-day, and play. 6084 Do you know Robin Hood, Huck?" 6085 6086 "No. Who's Robin Hood?" 6087 6088 "Why, he was one of the greatest men that was ever in England--and the 6089 best. He was a robber." 6090 6091 "Cracky, I wisht I was. Who did he rob?" 6092 6093 "Only sheriffs and bishops and rich people and kings, and such like. 6094 But he never bothered the poor. He loved 'em. He always divided up with 6095 'em perfectly square." 6096 6097 "Well, he must 'a' been a brick." 6098 6099 "I bet you he was, Huck. Oh, he was the noblest man that ever was. 6100 They ain't any such men now, I can tell you. He could lick any man in 6101 England, with one hand tied behind him; and he could take his yew bow 6102 and plug a ten-cent piece every time, a mile and a half." 6103 6104 "What's a YEW bow?" 6105 6106 "I don't know. It's some kind of a bow, of course. And if he hit that 6107 dime only on the edge he would set down and cry--and curse. But we'll 6108 play Robin Hood--it's nobby fun. I'll learn you." 6109 6110 "I'm agreed." 6111 6112 So they played Robin Hood all the afternoon, now and then casting a 6113 yearning eye down upon the haunted house and passing a remark about the 6114 morrow's prospects and possibilities there. As the sun began to sink 6115 into the west they took their way homeward athwart the long shadows of 6116 the trees and soon were buried from sight in the forests of Cardiff 6117 Hill. 6118 6119 On Saturday, shortly after noon, the boys were at the dead tree again. 6120 They had a smoke and a chat in the shade, and then dug a little in 6121 their last hole, not with great hope, but merely because Tom said there 6122 were so many cases where people had given up a treasure after getting 6123 down within six inches of it, and then somebody else had come along and 6124 turned it up with a single thrust of a shovel. The thing failed this 6125 time, however, so the boys shouldered their tools and went away feeling 6126 that they had not trifled with fortune, but had fulfilled all the 6127 requirements that belong to the business of treasure-hunting. 6128 6129 When they reached the haunted house there was something so weird and 6130 grisly about the dead silence that reigned there under the baking sun, 6131 and something so depressing about the loneliness and desolation of the 6132 place, that they were afraid, for a moment, to venture in. Then they 6133 crept to the door and took a trembling peep. They saw a weed-grown, 6134 floorless room, unplastered, an ancient fireplace, vacant windows, a 6135 ruinous staircase; and here, there, and everywhere hung ragged and 6136 abandoned cobwebs. They presently entered, softly, with quickened 6137 pulses, talking in whispers, ears alert to catch the slightest sound, 6138 and muscles tense and ready for instant retreat. 6139 6140 In a little while familiarity modified their fears and they gave the 6141 place a critical and interested examination, rather admiring their own 6142 boldness, and wondering at it, too. Next they wanted to look up-stairs. 6143 This was something like cutting off retreat, but they got to daring 6144 each other, and of course there could be but one result--they threw 6145 their tools into a corner and made the ascent. Up there were the same 6146 signs of decay. In one corner they found a closet that promised 6147 mystery, but the promise was a fraud--there was nothing in it. Their 6148 courage was up now and well in hand. They were about to go down and 6149 begin work when-- 6150 6151 "Sh!" said Tom. 6152 6153 "What is it?" whispered Huck, blanching with fright. 6154 6155 "Sh!... There!... Hear it?" 6156 6157 "Yes!... Oh, my! Let's run!" 6158 6159 "Keep still! Don't you budge! They're coming right toward the door." 6160 6161 The boys stretched themselves upon the floor with their eyes to 6162 knot-holes in the planking, and lay waiting, in a misery of fear. 6163 6164 "They've stopped.... No--coming.... Here they are. Don't whisper 6165 another word, Huck. My goodness, I wish I was out of this!" 6166 6167 Two men entered. Each boy said to himself: "There's the old deaf and 6168 dumb Spaniard that's been about town once or twice lately--never saw 6169 t'other man before." 6170 6171 "T'other" was a ragged, unkempt creature, with nothing very pleasant 6172 in his face. The Spaniard was wrapped in a serape; he had bushy white 6173 whiskers; long white hair flowed from under his sombrero, and he wore 6174 green goggles. When they came in, "t'other" was talking in a low voice; 6175 they sat down on the ground, facing the door, with their backs to the 6176 wall, and the speaker continued his remarks. His manner became less 6177 guarded and his words more distinct as he proceeded: 6178 6179 "No," said he, "I've thought it all over, and I don't like it. It's 6180 dangerous." 6181 6182 "Dangerous!" grunted the "deaf and dumb" Spaniard--to the vast 6183 surprise of the boys. "Milksop!" 6184 6185 This voice made the boys gasp and quake. It was Injun Joe's! There was 6186 silence for some time. Then Joe said: 6187 6188 "What's any more dangerous than that job up yonder--but nothing's come 6189 of it." 6190 6191 "That's different. Away up the river so, and not another house about. 6192 'Twon't ever be known that we tried, anyway, long as we didn't succeed." 6193 6194 "Well, what's more dangerous than coming here in the daytime!--anybody 6195 would suspicion us that saw us." 6196 6197 "I know that. But there warn't any other place as handy after that 6198 fool of a job. I want to quit this shanty. I wanted to yesterday, only 6199 it warn't any use trying to stir out of here, with those infernal boys 6200 playing over there on the hill right in full view." 6201 6202 "Those infernal boys" quaked again under the inspiration of this 6203 remark, and thought how lucky it was that they had remembered it was 6204 Friday and concluded to wait a day. They wished in their hearts they 6205 had waited a year. 6206 6207 The two men got out some food and made a luncheon. After a long and 6208 thoughtful silence, Injun Joe said: 6209 6210 "Look here, lad--you go back up the river where you belong. Wait there 6211 till you hear from me. I'll take the chances on dropping into this town 6212 just once more, for a look. We'll do that 'dangerous' job after I've 6213 spied around a little and think things look well for it. Then for 6214 Texas! We'll leg it together!" 6215 6216 This was satisfactory. Both men presently fell to yawning, and Injun 6217 Joe said: 6218 6219 "I'm dead for sleep! It's your turn to watch." 6220 6221 He curled down in the weeds and soon began to snore. His comrade 6222 stirred him once or twice and he became quiet. Presently the watcher 6223 began to nod; his head drooped lower and lower, both men began to snore 6224 now. 6225 6226 The boys drew a long, grateful breath. Tom whispered: 6227 6228 "Now's our chance--come!" 6229 6230 Huck said: 6231 6232 "I can't--I'd die if they was to wake." 6233 6234 Tom urged--Huck held back. At last Tom rose slowly and softly, and 6235 started alone. But the first step he made wrung such a hideous creak 6236 from the crazy floor that he sank down almost dead with fright. He 6237 never made a second attempt. The boys lay there counting the dragging 6238 moments till it seemed to them that time must be done and eternity 6239 growing gray; and then they were grateful to note that at last the sun 6240 was setting. 6241 6242 Now one snore ceased. Injun Joe sat up, stared around--smiled grimly 6243 upon his comrade, whose head was drooping upon his knees--stirred him 6244 up with his foot and said: 6245 6246 "Here! YOU'RE a watchman, ain't you! All right, though--nothing's 6247 happened." 6248 6249 "My! have I been asleep?" 6250 6251 "Oh, partly, partly. Nearly time for us to be moving, pard. What'll we 6252 do with what little swag we've got left?" 6253 6254 "I don't know--leave it here as we've always done, I reckon. No use to 6255 take it away till we start south. Six hundred and fifty in silver's 6256 something to carry." 6257 6258 "Well--all right--it won't matter to come here once more." 6259 6260 "No--but I'd say come in the night as we used to do--it's better." 6261 6262 "Yes: but look here; it may be a good while before I get the right 6263 chance at that job; accidents might happen; 'tain't in such a very good 6264 place; we'll just regularly bury it--and bury it deep." 6265 6266 "Good idea," said the comrade, who walked across the room, knelt down, 6267 raised one of the rearward hearth-stones and took out a bag that 6268 jingled pleasantly. He subtracted from it twenty or thirty dollars for 6269 himself and as much for Injun Joe, and passed the bag to the latter, 6270 who was on his knees in the corner, now, digging with his bowie-knife. 6271 6272 The boys forgot all their fears, all their miseries in an instant. 6273 With gloating eyes they watched every movement. Luck!--the splendor of 6274 it was beyond all imagination! Six hundred dollars was money enough to 6275 make half a dozen boys rich! Here was treasure-hunting under the 6276 happiest auspices--there would not be any bothersome uncertainty as to 6277 where to dig. They nudged each other every moment--eloquent nudges and 6278 easily understood, for they simply meant--"Oh, but ain't you glad NOW 6279 we're here!" 6280 6281 Joe's knife struck upon something. 6282 6283 "Hello!" said he. 6284 6285 "What is it?" said his comrade. 6286 6287 "Half-rotten plank--no, it's a box, I believe. Here--bear a hand and 6288 we'll see what it's here for. Never mind, I've broke a hole." 6289 6290 He reached his hand in and drew it out-- 6291 6292 "Man, it's money!" 6293 6294 The two men examined the handful of coins. They were gold. The boys 6295 above were as excited as themselves, and as delighted. 6296 6297 Joe's comrade said: 6298 6299 "We'll make quick work of this. There's an old rusty pick over amongst 6300 the weeds in the corner the other side of the fireplace--I saw it a 6301 minute ago." 6302 6303 He ran and brought the boys' pick and shovel. Injun Joe took the pick, 6304 looked it over critically, shook his head, muttered something to 6305 himself, and then began to use it. The box was soon unearthed. It was 6306 not very large; it was iron bound and had been very strong before the 6307 slow years had injured it. The men contemplated the treasure awhile in 6308 blissful silence. 6309 6310 "Pard, there's thousands of dollars here," said Injun Joe. 6311 6312 "'Twas always said that Murrel's gang used to be around here one 6313 summer," the stranger observed. 6314 6315 "I know it," said Injun Joe; "and this looks like it, I should say." 6316 6317 "Now you won't need to do that job." 6318 6319 The half-breed frowned. Said he: 6320 6321 "You don't know me. Least you don't know all about that thing. 'Tain't 6322 robbery altogether--it's REVENGE!" and a wicked light flamed in his 6323 eyes. "I'll need your help in it. When it's finished--then Texas. Go 6324 home to your Nance and your kids, and stand by till you hear from me." 6325 6326 "Well--if you say so; what'll we do with this--bury it again?" 6327 6328 "Yes. [Ravishing delight overhead.] NO! by the great Sachem, no! 6329 [Profound distress overhead.] I'd nearly forgot. That pick had fresh 6330 earth on it! [The boys were sick with terror in a moment.] What 6331 business has a pick and a shovel here? What business with fresh earth 6332 on them? Who brought them here--and where are they gone? Have you heard 6333 anybody?--seen anybody? What! bury it again and leave them to come and 6334 see the ground disturbed? Not exactly--not exactly. We'll take it to my 6335 den." 6336 6337 "Why, of course! Might have thought of that before. You mean Number 6338 One?" 6339 6340 "No--Number Two--under the cross. The other place is bad--too common." 6341 6342 "All right. It's nearly dark enough to start." 6343 6344 Injun Joe got up and went about from window to window cautiously 6345 peeping out. Presently he said: 6346 6347 "Who could have brought those tools here? Do you reckon they can be 6348 up-stairs?" 6349 6350 The boys' breath forsook them. Injun Joe put his hand on his knife, 6351 halted a moment, undecided, and then turned toward the stairway. The 6352 boys thought of the closet, but their strength was gone. The steps came 6353 creaking up the stairs--the intolerable distress of the situation woke 6354 the stricken resolution of the lads--they were about to spring for the 6355 closet, when there was a crash of rotten timbers and Injun Joe landed 6356 on the ground amid the debris of the ruined stairway. He gathered 6357 himself up cursing, and his comrade said: 6358 6359 "Now what's the use of all that? If it's anybody, and they're up 6360 there, let them STAY there--who cares? If they want to jump down, now, 6361 and get into trouble, who objects? It will be dark in fifteen minutes 6362 --and then let them follow us if they want to. I'm willing. In my 6363 opinion, whoever hove those things in here caught a sight of us and 6364 took us for ghosts or devils or something. I'll bet they're running 6365 yet." 6366 6367 Joe grumbled awhile; then he agreed with his friend that what daylight 6368 was left ought to be economized in getting things ready for leaving. 6369 Shortly afterward they slipped out of the house in the deepening 6370 twilight, and moved toward the river with their precious box. 6371 6372 Tom and Huck rose up, weak but vastly relieved, and stared after them 6373 through the chinks between the logs of the house. Follow? Not they. 6374 They were content to reach ground again without broken necks, and take 6375 the townward track over the hill. They did not talk much. They were too 6376 much absorbed in hating themselves--hating the ill luck that made them 6377 take the spade and the pick there. But for that, Injun Joe never would 6378 have suspected. He would have hidden the silver with the gold to wait 6379 there till his "revenge" was satisfied, and then he would have had the 6380 misfortune to find that money turn up missing. Bitter, bitter luck that 6381 the tools were ever brought there! 6382 6383 They resolved to keep a lookout for that Spaniard when he should come 6384 to town spying out for chances to do his revengeful job, and follow him 6385 to "Number Two," wherever that might be. Then a ghastly thought 6386 occurred to Tom. 6387 6388 "Revenge? What if he means US, Huck!" 6389 6390 "Oh, don't!" said Huck, nearly fainting. 6391 6392 They talked it all over, and as they entered town they agreed to 6393 believe that he might possibly mean somebody else--at least that he 6394 might at least mean nobody but Tom, since only Tom had testified. 6395 6396 Very, very small comfort it was to Tom to be alone in danger! Company 6397 would be a palpable improvement, he thought. 6398 6399 6400 6401 CHAPTER XXVII 6402 6403 THE adventure of the day mightily tormented Tom's dreams that night. 6404 Four times he had his hands on that rich treasure and four times it 6405 wasted to nothingness in his fingers as sleep forsook him and 6406 wakefulness brought back the hard reality of his misfortune. As he lay 6407 in the early morning recalling the incidents of his great adventure, he 6408 noticed that they seemed curiously subdued and far away--somewhat as if 6409 they had happened in another world, or in a time long gone by. Then it 6410 occurred to him that the great adventure itself must be a dream! There 6411 was one very strong argument in favor of this idea--namely, that the 6412 quantity of coin he had seen was too vast to be real. He had never seen 6413 as much as fifty dollars in one mass before, and he was like all boys 6414 of his age and station in life, in that he imagined that all references 6415 to "hundreds" and "thousands" were mere fanciful forms of speech, and 6416 that no such sums really existed in the world. He never had supposed 6417 for a moment that so large a sum as a hundred dollars was to be found 6418 in actual money in any one's possession. If his notions of hidden 6419 treasure had been analyzed, they would have been found to consist of a 6420 handful of real dimes and a bushel of vague, splendid, ungraspable 6421 dollars. 6422 6423 But the incidents of his adventure grew sensibly sharper and clearer 6424 under the attrition of thinking them over, and so he presently found 6425 himself leaning to the impression that the thing might not have been a 6426 dream, after all. This uncertainty must be swept away. He would snatch 6427 a hurried breakfast and go and find Huck. Huck was sitting on the 6428 gunwale of a flatboat, listlessly dangling his feet in the water and 6429 looking very melancholy. Tom concluded to let Huck lead up to the 6430 subject. If he did not do it, then the adventure would be proved to 6431 have been only a dream. 6432 6433 "Hello, Huck!" 6434 6435 "Hello, yourself." 6436 6437 Silence, for a minute. 6438 6439 "Tom, if we'd 'a' left the blame tools at the dead tree, we'd 'a' got 6440 the money. Oh, ain't it awful!" 6441 6442 "'Tain't a dream, then, 'tain't a dream! Somehow I most wish it was. 6443 Dog'd if I don't, Huck." 6444 6445 "What ain't a dream?" 6446 6447 "Oh, that thing yesterday. I been half thinking it was." 6448 6449 "Dream! If them stairs hadn't broke down you'd 'a' seen how much dream 6450 it was! I've had dreams enough all night--with that patch-eyed Spanish 6451 devil going for me all through 'em--rot him!" 6452 6453 "No, not rot him. FIND him! Track the money!" 6454 6455 "Tom, we'll never find him. A feller don't have only one chance for 6456 such a pile--and that one's lost. I'd feel mighty shaky if I was to see 6457 him, anyway." 6458 6459 "Well, so'd I; but I'd like to see him, anyway--and track him out--to 6460 his Number Two." 6461 6462 "Number Two--yes, that's it. I been thinking 'bout that. But I can't 6463 make nothing out of it. What do you reckon it is?" 6464 6465 "I dono. It's too deep. Say, Huck--maybe it's the number of a house!" 6466 6467 "Goody!... No, Tom, that ain't it. If it is, it ain't in this 6468 one-horse town. They ain't no numbers here." 6469 6470 "Well, that's so. Lemme think a minute. Here--it's the number of a 6471 room--in a tavern, you know!" 6472 6473 "Oh, that's the trick! They ain't only two taverns. We can find out 6474 quick." 6475 6476 "You stay here, Huck, till I come." 6477 6478 Tom was off at once. He did not care to have Huck's company in public 6479 places. He was gone half an hour. He found that in the best tavern, No. 6480 2 had long been occupied by a young lawyer, and was still so occupied. 6481 In the less ostentatious house, No. 2 was a mystery. The 6482 tavern-keeper's young son said it was kept locked all the time, and he 6483 never saw anybody go into it or come out of it except at night; he did 6484 not know any particular reason for this state of things; had had some 6485 little curiosity, but it was rather feeble; had made the most of the 6486 mystery by entertaining himself with the idea that that room was 6487 "ha'nted"; had noticed that there was a light in there the night before. 6488 6489 "That's what I've found out, Huck. I reckon that's the very No. 2 6490 we're after." 6491 6492 "I reckon it is, Tom. Now what you going to do?" 6493 6494 "Lemme think." 6495 6496 Tom thought a long time. Then he said: 6497 6498 "I'll tell you. The back door of that No. 2 is the door that comes out 6499 into that little close alley between the tavern and the old rattle trap 6500 of a brick store. Now you get hold of all the door-keys you can find, 6501 and I'll nip all of auntie's, and the first dark night we'll go there 6502 and try 'em. And mind you, keep a lookout for Injun Joe, because he 6503 said he was going to drop into town and spy around once more for a 6504 chance to get his revenge. If you see him, you just follow him; and if 6505 he don't go to that No. 2, that ain't the place." 6506 6507 "Lordy, I don't want to foller him by myself!" 6508 6509 "Why, it'll be night, sure. He mightn't ever see you--and if he did, 6510 maybe he'd never think anything." 6511 6512 "Well, if it's pretty dark I reckon I'll track him. I dono--I dono. 6513 I'll try." 6514 6515 "You bet I'll follow him, if it's dark, Huck. Why, he might 'a' found 6516 out he couldn't get his revenge, and be going right after that money." 6517 6518 "It's so, Tom, it's so. I'll foller him; I will, by jingoes!" 6519 6520 "Now you're TALKING! Don't you ever weaken, Huck, and I won't." 6521 6522 6523 6524 CHAPTER XXVIII 6525 6526 THAT night Tom and Huck were ready for their adventure. They hung 6527 about the neighborhood of the tavern until after nine, one watching the 6528 alley at a distance and the other the tavern door. Nobody entered the 6529 alley or left it; nobody resembling the Spaniard entered or left the 6530 tavern door. The night promised to be a fair one; so Tom went home with 6531 the understanding that if a considerable degree of darkness came on, 6532 Huck was to come and "maow," whereupon he would slip out and try the 6533 keys. But the night remained clear, and Huck closed his watch and 6534 retired to bed in an empty sugar hogshead about twelve. 6535 6536 Tuesday the boys had the same ill luck. Also Wednesday. But Thursday 6537 night promised better. Tom slipped out in good season with his aunt's 6538 old tin lantern, and a large towel to blindfold it with. He hid the 6539 lantern in Huck's sugar hogshead and the watch began. An hour before 6540 midnight the tavern closed up and its lights (the only ones 6541 thereabouts) were put out. No Spaniard had been seen. Nobody had 6542 entered or left the alley. Everything was auspicious. The blackness of 6543 darkness reigned, the perfect stillness was interrupted only by 6544 occasional mutterings of distant thunder. 6545 6546 Tom got his lantern, lit it in the hogshead, wrapped it closely in the 6547 towel, and the two adventurers crept in the gloom toward the tavern. 6548 Huck stood sentry and Tom felt his way into the alley. Then there was a 6549 season of waiting anxiety that weighed upon Huck's spirits like a 6550 mountain. He began to wish he could see a flash from the lantern--it 6551 would frighten him, but it would at least tell him that Tom was alive 6552 yet. It seemed hours since Tom had disappeared. Surely he must have 6553 fainted; maybe he was dead; maybe his heart had burst under terror and 6554 excitement. In his uneasiness Huck found himself drawing closer and 6555 closer to the alley; fearing all sorts of dreadful things, and 6556 momentarily expecting some catastrophe to happen that would take away 6557 his breath. There was not much to take away, for he seemed only able to 6558 inhale it by thimblefuls, and his heart would soon wear itself out, the 6559 way it was beating. Suddenly there was a flash of light and Tom came 6560 tearing by him: "Run!" said he; "run, for your life!" 6561 6562 He needn't have repeated it; once was enough; Huck was making thirty 6563 or forty miles an hour before the repetition was uttered. The boys 6564 never stopped till they reached the shed of a deserted slaughter-house 6565 at the lower end of the village. Just as they got within its shelter 6566 the storm burst and the rain poured down. As soon as Tom got his breath 6567 he said: 6568 6569 "Huck, it was awful! I tried two of the keys, just as soft as I could; 6570 but they seemed to make such a power of racket that I couldn't hardly 6571 get my breath I was so scared. They wouldn't turn in the lock, either. 6572 Well, without noticing what I was doing, I took hold of the knob, and 6573 open comes the door! It warn't locked! I hopped in, and shook off the 6574 towel, and, GREAT CAESAR'S GHOST!" 6575 6576 "What!--what'd you see, Tom?" 6577 6578 "Huck, I most stepped onto Injun Joe's hand!" 6579 6580 "No!" 6581 6582 "Yes! He was lying there, sound asleep on the floor, with his old 6583 patch on his eye and his arms spread out." 6584 6585 "Lordy, what did you do? Did he wake up?" 6586 6587 "No, never budged. Drunk, I reckon. I just grabbed that towel and 6588 started!" 6589 6590 "I'd never 'a' thought of the towel, I bet!" 6591 6592 "Well, I would. My aunt would make me mighty sick if I lost it." 6593 6594 "Say, Tom, did you see that box?" 6595 6596 "Huck, I didn't wait to look around. I didn't see the box, I didn't 6597 see the cross. I didn't see anything but a bottle and a tin cup on the 6598 floor by Injun Joe; yes, I saw two barrels and lots more bottles in the 6599 room. Don't you see, now, what's the matter with that ha'nted room?" 6600 6601 "How?" 6602 6603 "Why, it's ha'nted with whiskey! Maybe ALL the Temperance Taverns have 6604 got a ha'nted room, hey, Huck?" 6605 6606 "Well, I reckon maybe that's so. Who'd 'a' thought such a thing? But 6607 say, Tom, now's a mighty good time to get that box, if Injun Joe's 6608 drunk." 6609 6610 "It is, that! You try it!" 6611 6612 Huck shuddered. 6613 6614 "Well, no--I reckon not." 6615 6616 "And I reckon not, Huck. Only one bottle alongside of Injun Joe ain't 6617 enough. If there'd been three, he'd be drunk enough and I'd do it." 6618 6619 There was a long pause for reflection, and then Tom said: 6620 6621 "Lookyhere, Huck, less not try that thing any more till we know Injun 6622 Joe's not in there. It's too scary. Now, if we watch every night, we'll 6623 be dead sure to see him go out, some time or other, and then we'll 6624 snatch that box quicker'n lightning." 6625 6626 "Well, I'm agreed. I'll watch the whole night long, and I'll do it 6627 every night, too, if you'll do the other part of the job." 6628 6629 "All right, I will. All you got to do is to trot up Hooper Street a 6630 block and maow--and if I'm asleep, you throw some gravel at the window 6631 and that'll fetch me." 6632 6633 "Agreed, and good as wheat!" 6634 6635 "Now, Huck, the storm's over, and I'll go home. It'll begin to be 6636 daylight in a couple of hours. You go back and watch that long, will 6637 you?" 6638 6639 "I said I would, Tom, and I will. I'll ha'nt that tavern every night 6640 for a year! I'll sleep all day and I'll stand watch all night." 6641 6642 "That's all right. Now, where you going to sleep?" 6643 6644 "In Ben Rogers' hayloft. He lets me, and so does his pap's nigger man, 6645 Uncle Jake. I tote water for Uncle Jake whenever he wants me to, and 6646 any time I ask him he gives me a little something to eat if he can 6647 spare it. That's a mighty good nigger, Tom. He likes me, becuz I don't 6648 ever act as if I was above him. Sometime I've set right down and eat 6649 WITH him. But you needn't tell that. A body's got to do things when 6650 he's awful hungry he wouldn't want to do as a steady thing." 6651 6652 "Well, if I don't want you in the daytime, I'll let you sleep. I won't 6653 come bothering around. Any time you see something's up, in the night, 6654 just skip right around and maow." 6655 6656 6657 6658 CHAPTER XXIX 6659 6660 THE first thing Tom heard on Friday morning was a glad piece of news 6661 --Judge Thatcher's family had come back to town the night before. Both 6662 Injun Joe and the treasure sunk into secondary importance for a moment, 6663 and Becky took the chief place in the boy's interest. He saw her and 6664 they had an exhausting good time playing "hi-spy" and "gully-keeper" 6665 with a crowd of their school-mates. The day was completed and crowned 6666 in a peculiarly satisfactory way: Becky teased her mother to appoint 6667 the next day for the long-promised and long-delayed picnic, and she 6668 consented. The child's delight was boundless; and Tom's not more 6669 moderate. The invitations were sent out before sunset, and straightway 6670 the young folks of the village were thrown into a fever of preparation 6671 and pleasurable anticipation. Tom's excitement enabled him to keep 6672 awake until a pretty late hour, and he had good hopes of hearing Huck's 6673 "maow," and of having his treasure to astonish Becky and the picnickers 6674 with, next day; but he was disappointed. No signal came that night. 6675 6676 Morning came, eventually, and by ten or eleven o'clock a giddy and 6677 rollicking company were gathered at Judge Thatcher's, and everything 6678 was ready for a start. It was not the custom for elderly people to mar 6679 the picnics with their presence. The children were considered safe 6680 enough under the wings of a few young ladies of eighteen and a few 6681 young gentlemen of twenty-three or thereabouts. The old steam ferryboat 6682 was chartered for the occasion; presently the gay throng filed up the 6683 main street laden with provision-baskets. Sid was sick and had to miss 6684 the fun; Mary remained at home to entertain him. The last thing Mrs. 6685 Thatcher said to Becky, was: 6686 6687 "You'll not get back till late. Perhaps you'd better stay all night 6688 with some of the girls that live near the ferry-landing, child." 6689 6690 "Then I'll stay with Susy Harper, mamma." 6691 6692 "Very well. And mind and behave yourself and don't be any trouble." 6693 6694 Presently, as they tripped along, Tom said to Becky: 6695 6696 "Say--I'll tell you what we'll do. 'Stead of going to Joe Harper's 6697 we'll climb right up the hill and stop at the Widow Douglas'. She'll 6698 have ice-cream! She has it most every day--dead loads of it. And she'll 6699 be awful glad to have us." 6700 6701 "Oh, that will be fun!" 6702 6703 Then Becky reflected a moment and said: 6704 6705 "But what will mamma say?" 6706 6707 "How'll she ever know?" 6708 6709 The girl turned the idea over in her mind, and said reluctantly: 6710 6711 "I reckon it's wrong--but--" 6712 6713 "But shucks! Your mother won't know, and so what's the harm? All she 6714 wants is that you'll be safe; and I bet you she'd 'a' said go there if 6715 she'd 'a' thought of it. I know she would!" 6716 6717 The Widow Douglas' splendid hospitality was a tempting bait. It and 6718 Tom's persuasions presently carried the day. So it was decided to say 6719 nothing anybody about the night's programme. Presently it occurred to 6720 Tom that maybe Huck might come this very night and give the signal. The 6721 thought took a deal of the spirit out of his anticipations. Still he 6722 could not bear to give up the fun at Widow Douglas'. And why should he 6723 give it up, he reasoned--the signal did not come the night before, so 6724 why should it be any more likely to come to-night? The sure fun of the 6725 evening outweighed the uncertain treasure; and, boy-like, he determined 6726 to yield to the stronger inclination and not allow himself to think of 6727 the box of money another time that day. 6728 6729 Three miles below town the ferryboat stopped at the mouth of a woody 6730 hollow and tied up. The crowd swarmed ashore and soon the forest 6731 distances and craggy heights echoed far and near with shoutings and 6732 laughter. All the different ways of getting hot and tired were gone 6733 through with, and by-and-by the rovers straggled back to camp fortified 6734 with responsible appetites, and then the destruction of the good things 6735 began. After the feast there was a refreshing season of rest and chat 6736 in the shade of spreading oaks. By-and-by somebody shouted: 6737 6738 "Who's ready for the cave?" 6739 6740 Everybody was. Bundles of candles were procured, and straightway there 6741 was a general scamper up the hill. The mouth of the cave was up the 6742 hillside--an opening shaped like a letter A. Its massive oaken door 6743 stood unbarred. Within was a small chamber, chilly as an ice-house, and 6744 walled by Nature with solid limestone that was dewy with a cold sweat. 6745 It was romantic and mysterious to stand here in the deep gloom and look 6746 out upon the green valley shining in the sun. But the impressiveness of 6747 the situation quickly wore off, and the romping began again. The moment 6748 a candle was lighted there was a general rush upon the owner of it; a 6749 struggle and a gallant defence followed, but the candle was soon 6750 knocked down or blown out, and then there was a glad clamor of laughter 6751 and a new chase. But all things have an end. By-and-by the procession 6752 went filing down the steep descent of the main avenue, the flickering 6753 rank of lights dimly revealing the lofty walls of rock almost to their 6754 point of junction sixty feet overhead. This main avenue was not more 6755 than eight or ten feet wide. Every few steps other lofty and still 6756 narrower crevices branched from it on either hand--for McDougal's cave 6757 was but a vast labyrinth of crooked aisles that ran into each other and 6758 out again and led nowhere. It was said that one might wander days and 6759 nights together through its intricate tangle of rifts and chasms, and 6760 never find the end of the cave; and that he might go down, and down, 6761 and still down, into the earth, and it was just the same--labyrinth 6762 under labyrinth, and no end to any of them. No man "knew" the cave. 6763 That was an impossible thing. Most of the young men knew a portion of 6764 it, and it was not customary to venture much beyond this known portion. 6765 Tom Sawyer knew as much of the cave as any one. 6766 6767 The procession moved along the main avenue some three-quarters of a 6768 mile, and then groups and couples began to slip aside into branch 6769 avenues, fly along the dismal corridors, and take each other by 6770 surprise at points where the corridors joined again. Parties were able 6771 to elude each other for the space of half an hour without going beyond 6772 the "known" ground. 6773 6774 By-and-by, one group after another came straggling back to the mouth 6775 of the cave, panting, hilarious, smeared from head to foot with tallow 6776 drippings, daubed with clay, and entirely delighted with the success of 6777 the day. Then they were astonished to find that they had been taking no 6778 note of time and that night was about at hand. The clanging bell had 6779 been calling for half an hour. However, this sort of close to the day's 6780 adventures was romantic and therefore satisfactory. When the ferryboat 6781 with her wild freight pushed into the stream, nobody cared sixpence for 6782 the wasted time but the captain of the craft. 6783 6784 Huck was already upon his watch when the ferryboat's lights went 6785 glinting past the wharf. He heard no noise on board, for the young 6786 people were as subdued and still as people usually are who are nearly 6787 tired to death. He wondered what boat it was, and why she did not stop 6788 at the wharf--and then he dropped her out of his mind and put his 6789 attention upon his business. The night was growing cloudy and dark. Ten 6790 o'clock came, and the noise of vehicles ceased, scattered lights began 6791 to wink out, all straggling foot-passengers disappeared, the village 6792 betook itself to its slumbers and left the small watcher alone with the 6793 silence and the ghosts. Eleven o'clock came, and the tavern lights were 6794 put out; darkness everywhere, now. Huck waited what seemed a weary long 6795 time, but nothing happened. His faith was weakening. Was there any use? 6796 Was there really any use? Why not give it up and turn in? 6797 6798 A noise fell upon his ear. He was all attention in an instant. The 6799 alley door closed softly. He sprang to the corner of the brick store. 6800 The next moment two men brushed by him, and one seemed to have 6801 something under his arm. It must be that box! So they were going to 6802 remove the treasure. Why call Tom now? It would be absurd--the men 6803 would get away with the box and never be found again. No, he would 6804 stick to their wake and follow them; he would trust to the darkness for 6805 security from discovery. So communing with himself, Huck stepped out 6806 and glided along behind the men, cat-like, with bare feet, allowing 6807 them to keep just far enough ahead not to be invisible. 6808 6809 They moved up the river street three blocks, then turned to the left 6810 up a cross-street. They went straight ahead, then, until they came to 6811 the path that led up Cardiff Hill; this they took. They passed by the 6812 old Welshman's house, half-way up the hill, without hesitating, and 6813 still climbed upward. Good, thought Huck, they will bury it in the old 6814 quarry. But they never stopped at the quarry. They passed on, up the 6815 summit. They plunged into the narrow path between the tall sumach 6816 bushes, and were at once hidden in the gloom. Huck closed up and 6817 shortened his distance, now, for they would never be able to see him. 6818 He trotted along awhile; then slackened his pace, fearing he was 6819 gaining too fast; moved on a piece, then stopped altogether; listened; 6820 no sound; none, save that he seemed to hear the beating of his own 6821 heart. The hooting of an owl came over the hill--ominous sound! But no 6822 footsteps. Heavens, was everything lost! He was about to spring with 6823 winged feet, when a man cleared his throat not four feet from him! 6824 Huck's heart shot into his throat, but he swallowed it again; and then 6825 he stood there shaking as if a dozen agues had taken charge of him at 6826 once, and so weak that he thought he must surely fall to the ground. He 6827 knew where he was. He knew he was within five steps of the stile 6828 leading into Widow Douglas' grounds. Very well, he thought, let them 6829 bury it there; it won't be hard to find. 6830 6831 Now there was a voice--a very low voice--Injun Joe's: 6832 6833 "Damn her, maybe she's got company--there's lights, late as it is." 6834 6835 "I can't see any." 6836 6837 This was that stranger's voice--the stranger of the haunted house. A 6838 deadly chill went to Huck's heart--this, then, was the "revenge" job! 6839 His thought was, to fly. Then he remembered that the Widow Douglas had 6840 been kind to him more than once, and maybe these men were going to 6841 murder her. He wished he dared venture to warn her; but he knew he 6842 didn't dare--they might come and catch him. He thought all this and 6843 more in the moment that elapsed between the stranger's remark and Injun 6844 Joe's next--which was-- 6845 6846 "Because the bush is in your way. Now--this way--now you see, don't 6847 you?" 6848 6849 "Yes. Well, there IS company there, I reckon. Better give it up." 6850 6851 "Give it up, and I just leaving this country forever! Give it up and 6852 maybe never have another chance. I tell you again, as I've told you 6853 before, I don't care for her swag--you may have it. But her husband was 6854 rough on me--many times he was rough on me--and mainly he was the 6855 justice of the peace that jugged me for a vagrant. And that ain't all. 6856 It ain't a millionth part of it! He had me HORSEWHIPPED!--horsewhipped 6857 in front of the jail, like a nigger!--with all the town looking on! 6858 HORSEWHIPPED!--do you understand? He took advantage of me and died. But 6859 I'll take it out of HER." 6860 6861 "Oh, don't kill her! Don't do that!" 6862 6863 "Kill? Who said anything about killing? I would kill HIM if he was 6864 here; but not her. When you want to get revenge on a woman you don't 6865 kill her--bosh! you go for her looks. You slit her nostrils--you notch 6866 her ears like a sow!" 6867 6868 "By God, that's--" 6869 6870 "Keep your opinion to yourself! It will be safest for you. I'll tie 6871 her to the bed. If she bleeds to death, is that my fault? I'll not cry, 6872 if she does. My friend, you'll help me in this thing--for MY sake 6873 --that's why you're here--I mightn't be able alone. If you flinch, I'll 6874 kill you. Do you understand that? And if I have to kill you, I'll kill 6875 her--and then I reckon nobody'll ever know much about who done this 6876 business." 6877 6878 "Well, if it's got to be done, let's get at it. The quicker the 6879 better--I'm all in a shiver." 6880 6881 "Do it NOW? And company there? Look here--I'll get suspicious of you, 6882 first thing you know. No--we'll wait till the lights are out--there's 6883 no hurry." 6884 6885 Huck felt that a silence was going to ensue--a thing still more awful 6886 than any amount of murderous talk; so he held his breath and stepped 6887 gingerly back; planted his foot carefully and firmly, after balancing, 6888 one-legged, in a precarious way and almost toppling over, first on one 6889 side and then on the other. He took another step back, with the same 6890 elaboration and the same risks; then another and another, and--a twig 6891 snapped under his foot! His breath stopped and he listened. There was 6892 no sound--the stillness was perfect. His gratitude was measureless. Now 6893 he turned in his tracks, between the walls of sumach bushes--turned 6894 himself as carefully as if he were a ship--and then stepped quickly but 6895 cautiously along. When he emerged at the quarry he felt secure, and so 6896 he picked up his nimble heels and flew. Down, down he sped, till he 6897 reached the Welshman's. He banged at the door, and presently the heads 6898 of the old man and his two stalwart sons were thrust from windows. 6899 6900 "What's the row there? Who's banging? What do you want?" 6901 6902 "Let me in--quick! I'll tell everything." 6903 6904 "Why, who are you?" 6905 6906 "Huckleberry Finn--quick, let me in!" 6907 6908 "Huckleberry Finn, indeed! It ain't a name to open many doors, I 6909 judge! But let him in, lads, and let's see what's the trouble." 6910 6911 "Please don't ever tell I told you," were Huck's first words when he 6912 got in. "Please don't--I'd be killed, sure--but the widow's been good 6913 friends to me sometimes, and I want to tell--I WILL tell if you'll 6914 promise you won't ever say it was me." 6915 6916 "By George, he HAS got something to tell, or he wouldn't act so!" 6917 exclaimed the old man; "out with it and nobody here'll ever tell, lad." 6918 6919 Three minutes later the old man and his sons, well armed, were up the 6920 hill, and just entering the sumach path on tiptoe, their weapons in 6921 their hands. Huck accompanied them no further. He hid behind a great 6922 bowlder and fell to listening. There was a lagging, anxious silence, 6923 and then all of a sudden there was an explosion of firearms and a cry. 6924 6925 Huck waited for no particulars. He sprang away and sped down the hill 6926 as fast as his legs could carry him. 6927 6928 6929 6930 CHAPTER XXX 6931 6932 AS the earliest suspicion of dawn appeared on Sunday morning, Huck 6933 came groping up the hill and rapped gently at the old Welshman's door. 6934 The inmates were asleep, but it was a sleep that was set on a 6935 hair-trigger, on account of the exciting episode of the night. A call 6936 came from a window: 6937 6938 "Who's there!" 6939 6940 Huck's scared voice answered in a low tone: 6941 6942 "Please let me in! It's only Huck Finn!" 6943 6944 "It's a name that can open this door night or day, lad!--and welcome!" 6945 6946 These were strange words to the vagabond boy's ears, and the 6947 pleasantest he had ever heard. He could not recollect that the closing 6948 word had ever been applied in his case before. The door was quickly 6949 unlocked, and he entered. Huck was given a seat and the old man and his 6950 brace of tall sons speedily dressed themselves. 6951 6952 "Now, my boy, I hope you're good and hungry, because breakfast will be 6953 ready as soon as the sun's up, and we'll have a piping hot one, too 6954 --make yourself easy about that! I and the boys hoped you'd turn up and 6955 stop here last night." 6956 6957 "I was awful scared," said Huck, "and I run. I took out when the 6958 pistols went off, and I didn't stop for three mile. I've come now becuz 6959 I wanted to know about it, you know; and I come before daylight becuz I 6960 didn't want to run across them devils, even if they was dead." 6961 6962 "Well, poor chap, you do look as if you'd had a hard night of it--but 6963 there's a bed here for you when you've had your breakfast. No, they 6964 ain't dead, lad--we are sorry enough for that. You see we knew right 6965 where to put our hands on them, by your description; so we crept along 6966 on tiptoe till we got within fifteen feet of them--dark as a cellar 6967 that sumach path was--and just then I found I was going to sneeze. It 6968 was the meanest kind of luck! I tried to keep it back, but no use 6969 --'twas bound to come, and it did come! I was in the lead with my pistol 6970 raised, and when the sneeze started those scoundrels a-rustling to get 6971 out of the path, I sung out, 'Fire boys!' and blazed away at the place 6972 where the rustling was. So did the boys. But they were off in a jiffy, 6973 those villains, and we after them, down through the woods. I judge we 6974 never touched them. They fired a shot apiece as they started, but their 6975 bullets whizzed by and didn't do us any harm. As soon as we lost the 6976 sound of their feet we quit chasing, and went down and stirred up the 6977 constables. They got a posse together, and went off to guard the river 6978 bank, and as soon as it is light the sheriff and a gang are going to 6979 beat up the woods. My boys will be with them presently. I wish we had 6980 some sort of description of those rascals--'twould help a good deal. 6981 But you couldn't see what they were like, in the dark, lad, I suppose?" 6982 6983 "Oh yes; I saw them down-town and follered them." 6984 6985 "Splendid! Describe them--describe them, my boy!" 6986 6987 "One's the old deaf and dumb Spaniard that's ben around here once or 6988 twice, and t'other's a mean-looking, ragged--" 6989 6990 "That's enough, lad, we know the men! Happened on them in the woods 6991 back of the widow's one day, and they slunk away. Off with you, boys, 6992 and tell the sheriff--get your breakfast to-morrow morning!" 6993 6994 The Welshman's sons departed at once. As they were leaving the room 6995 Huck sprang up and exclaimed: 6996 6997 "Oh, please don't tell ANYbody it was me that blowed on them! Oh, 6998 please!" 6999 7000 "All right if you say it, Huck, but you ought to have the credit of 7001 what you did." 7002 7003 "Oh no, no! Please don't tell!" 7004 7005 When the young men were gone, the old Welshman said: 7006 7007 "They won't tell--and I won't. But why don't you want it known?" 7008 7009 Huck would not explain, further than to say that he already knew too 7010 much about one of those men and would not have the man know that he 7011 knew anything against him for the whole world--he would be killed for 7012 knowing it, sure. 7013 7014 The old man promised secrecy once more, and said: 7015 7016 "How did you come to follow these fellows, lad? Were they looking 7017 suspicious?" 7018 7019 Huck was silent while he framed a duly cautious reply. Then he said: 7020 7021 "Well, you see, I'm a kind of a hard lot,--least everybody says so, 7022 and I don't see nothing agin it--and sometimes I can't sleep much, on 7023 account of thinking about it and sort of trying to strike out a new way 7024 of doing. That was the way of it last night. I couldn't sleep, and so I 7025 come along up-street 'bout midnight, a-turning it all over, and when I 7026 got to that old shackly brick store by the Temperance Tavern, I backed 7027 up agin the wall to have another think. Well, just then along comes 7028 these two chaps slipping along close by me, with something under their 7029 arm, and I reckoned they'd stole it. One was a-smoking, and t'other one 7030 wanted a light; so they stopped right before me and the cigars lit up 7031 their faces and I see that the big one was the deaf and dumb Spaniard, 7032 by his white whiskers and the patch on his eye, and t'other one was a 7033 rusty, ragged-looking devil." 7034 7035 "Could you see the rags by the light of the cigars?" 7036 7037 This staggered Huck for a moment. Then he said: 7038 7039 "Well, I don't know--but somehow it seems as if I did." 7040 7041 "Then they went on, and you--" 7042 7043 "Follered 'em--yes. That was it. I wanted to see what was up--they 7044 sneaked along so. I dogged 'em to the widder's stile, and stood in the 7045 dark and heard the ragged one beg for the widder, and the Spaniard 7046 swear he'd spile her looks just as I told you and your two--" 7047 7048 "What! The DEAF AND DUMB man said all that!" 7049 7050 Huck had made another terrible mistake! He was trying his best to keep 7051 the old man from getting the faintest hint of who the Spaniard might 7052 be, and yet his tongue seemed determined to get him into trouble in 7053 spite of all he could do. He made several efforts to creep out of his 7054 scrape, but the old man's eye was upon him and he made blunder after 7055 blunder. Presently the Welshman said: 7056 7057 "My boy, don't be afraid of me. I wouldn't hurt a hair of your head 7058 for all the world. No--I'd protect you--I'd protect you. This Spaniard 7059 is not deaf and dumb; you've let that slip without intending it; you 7060 can't cover that up now. You know something about that Spaniard that 7061 you want to keep dark. Now trust me--tell me what it is, and trust me 7062 --I won't betray you." 7063 7064 Huck looked into the old man's honest eyes a moment, then bent over 7065 and whispered in his ear: 7066 7067 "'Tain't a Spaniard--it's Injun Joe!" 7068 7069 The Welshman almost jumped out of his chair. In a moment he said: 7070 7071 "It's all plain enough, now. When you talked about notching ears and 7072 slitting noses I judged that that was your own embellishment, because 7073 white men don't take that sort of revenge. But an Injun! That's a 7074 different matter altogether." 7075 7076 During breakfast the talk went on, and in the course of it the old man 7077 said that the last thing which he and his sons had done, before going 7078 to bed, was to get a lantern and examine the stile and its vicinity for 7079 marks of blood. They found none, but captured a bulky bundle of-- 7080 7081 "Of WHAT?" 7082 7083 If the words had been lightning they could not have leaped with a more 7084 stunning suddenness from Huck's blanched lips. His eyes were staring 7085 wide, now, and his breath suspended--waiting for the answer. The 7086 Welshman started--stared in return--three seconds--five seconds--ten 7087 --then replied: 7088 7089 "Of burglar's tools. Why, what's the MATTER with you?" 7090 7091 Huck sank back, panting gently, but deeply, unutterably grateful. The 7092 Welshman eyed him gravely, curiously--and presently said: 7093 7094 "Yes, burglar's tools. That appears to relieve you a good deal. But 7095 what did give you that turn? What were YOU expecting we'd found?" 7096 7097 Huck was in a close place--the inquiring eye was upon him--he would 7098 have given anything for material for a plausible answer--nothing 7099 suggested itself--the inquiring eye was boring deeper and deeper--a 7100 senseless reply offered--there was no time to weigh it, so at a venture 7101 he uttered it--feebly: 7102 7103 "Sunday-school books, maybe." 7104 7105 Poor Huck was too distressed to smile, but the old man laughed loud 7106 and joyously, shook up the details of his anatomy from head to foot, 7107 and ended by saying that such a laugh was money in a-man's pocket, 7108 because it cut down the doctor's bill like everything. Then he added: 7109 7110 "Poor old chap, you're white and jaded--you ain't well a bit--no 7111 wonder you're a little flighty and off your balance. But you'll come 7112 out of it. Rest and sleep will fetch you out all right, I hope." 7113 7114 Huck was irritated to think he had been such a goose and betrayed such 7115 a suspicious excitement, for he had dropped the idea that the parcel 7116 brought from the tavern was the treasure, as soon as he had heard the 7117 talk at the widow's stile. He had only thought it was not the treasure, 7118 however--he had not known that it wasn't--and so the suggestion of a 7119 captured bundle was too much for his self-possession. But on the whole 7120 he felt glad the little episode had happened, for now he knew beyond 7121 all question that that bundle was not THE bundle, and so his mind was 7122 at rest and exceedingly comfortable. In fact, everything seemed to be 7123 drifting just in the right direction, now; the treasure must be still 7124 in No. 2, the men would be captured and jailed that day, and he and Tom 7125 could seize the gold that night without any trouble or any fear of 7126 interruption. 7127 7128 Just as breakfast was completed there was a knock at the door. Huck 7129 jumped for a hiding-place, for he had no mind to be connected even 7130 remotely with the late event. The Welshman admitted several ladies and 7131 gentlemen, among them the Widow Douglas, and noticed that groups of 7132 citizens were climbing up the hill--to stare at the stile. So the news 7133 had spread. The Welshman had to tell the story of the night to the 7134 visitors. The widow's gratitude for her preservation was outspoken. 7135 7136 "Don't say a word about it, madam. There's another that you're more 7137 beholden to than you are to me and my boys, maybe, but he don't allow 7138 me to tell his name. We wouldn't have been there but for him." 7139 7140 Of course this excited a curiosity so vast that it almost belittled 7141 the main matter--but the Welshman allowed it to eat into the vitals of 7142 his visitors, and through them be transmitted to the whole town, for he 7143 refused to part with his secret. When all else had been learned, the 7144 widow said: 7145 7146 "I went to sleep reading in bed and slept straight through all that 7147 noise. Why didn't you come and wake me?" 7148 7149 "We judged it warn't worth while. Those fellows warn't likely to come 7150 again--they hadn't any tools left to work with, and what was the use of 7151 waking you up and scaring you to death? My three negro men stood guard 7152 at your house all the rest of the night. They've just come back." 7153 7154 More visitors came, and the story had to be told and retold for a 7155 couple of hours more. 7156 7157 There was no Sabbath-school during day-school vacation, but everybody 7158 was early at church. The stirring event was well canvassed. News came 7159 that not a sign of the two villains had been yet discovered. When the 7160 sermon was finished, Judge Thatcher's wife dropped alongside of Mrs. 7161 Harper as she moved down the aisle with the crowd and said: 7162 7163 "Is my Becky going to sleep all day? I just expected she would be 7164 tired to death." 7165 7166 "Your Becky?" 7167 7168 "Yes," with a startled look--"didn't she stay with you last night?" 7169 7170 "Why, no." 7171 7172 Mrs. Thatcher turned pale, and sank into a pew, just as Aunt Polly, 7173 talking briskly with a friend, passed by. Aunt Polly said: 7174 7175 "Good-morning, Mrs. Thatcher. Good-morning, Mrs. Harper. I've got a 7176 boy that's turned up missing. I reckon my Tom stayed at your house last 7177 night--one of you. And now he's afraid to come to church. I've got to 7178 settle with him." 7179 7180 Mrs. Thatcher shook her head feebly and turned paler than ever. 7181 7182 "He didn't stay with us," said Mrs. Harper, beginning to look uneasy. 7183 A marked anxiety came into Aunt Polly's face. 7184 7185 "Joe Harper, have you seen my Tom this morning?" 7186 7187 "No'm." 7188 7189 "When did you see him last?" 7190 7191 Joe tried to remember, but was not sure he could say. The people had 7192 stopped moving out of church. Whispers passed along, and a boding 7193 uneasiness took possession of every countenance. Children were 7194 anxiously questioned, and young teachers. They all said they had not 7195 noticed whether Tom and Becky were on board the ferryboat on the 7196 homeward trip; it was dark; no one thought of inquiring if any one was 7197 missing. One young man finally blurted out his fear that they were 7198 still in the cave! Mrs. Thatcher swooned away. Aunt Polly fell to 7199 crying and wringing her hands. 7200 7201 The alarm swept from lip to lip, from group to group, from street to 7202 street, and within five minutes the bells were wildly clanging and the 7203 whole town was up! The Cardiff Hill episode sank into instant 7204 insignificance, the burglars were forgotten, horses were saddled, 7205 skiffs were manned, the ferryboat ordered out, and before the horror 7206 was half an hour old, two hundred men were pouring down highroad and 7207 river toward the cave. 7208 7209 All the long afternoon the village seemed empty and dead. Many women 7210 visited Aunt Polly and Mrs. Thatcher and tried to comfort them. They 7211 cried with them, too, and that was still better than words. All the 7212 tedious night the town waited for news; but when the morning dawned at 7213 last, all the word that came was, "Send more candles--and send food." 7214 Mrs. Thatcher was almost crazed; and Aunt Polly, also. Judge Thatcher 7215 sent messages of hope and encouragement from the cave, but they 7216 conveyed no real cheer. 7217 7218 The old Welshman came home toward daylight, spattered with 7219 candle-grease, smeared with clay, and almost worn out. He found Huck 7220 still in the bed that had been provided for him, and delirious with 7221 fever. The physicians were all at the cave, so the Widow Douglas came 7222 and took charge of the patient. She said she would do her best by him, 7223 because, whether he was good, bad, or indifferent, he was the Lord's, 7224 and nothing that was the Lord's was a thing to be neglected. The 7225 Welshman said Huck had good spots in him, and the widow said: 7226 7227 "You can depend on it. That's the Lord's mark. He don't leave it off. 7228 He never does. Puts it somewhere on every creature that comes from his 7229 hands." 7230 7231 Early in the forenoon parties of jaded men began to straggle into the 7232 village, but the strongest of the citizens continued searching. All the 7233 news that could be gained was that remotenesses of the cavern were 7234 being ransacked that had never been visited before; that every corner 7235 and crevice was going to be thoroughly searched; that wherever one 7236 wandered through the maze of passages, lights were to be seen flitting 7237 hither and thither in the distance, and shoutings and pistol-shots sent 7238 their hollow reverberations to the ear down the sombre aisles. In one 7239 place, far from the section usually traversed by tourists, the names 7240 "BECKY & TOM" had been found traced upon the rocky wall with 7241 candle-smoke, and near at hand a grease-soiled bit of ribbon. Mrs. 7242 Thatcher recognized the ribbon and cried over it. She said it was the 7243 last relic she should ever have of her child; and that no other memorial 7244 of her could ever be so precious, because this one parted latest from 7245 the living body before the awful death came. Some said that now and 7246 then, in the cave, a far-away speck of light would glimmer, and then a 7247 glorious shout would burst forth and a score of men go trooping down the 7248 echoing aisle--and then a sickening disappointment always followed; the 7249 children were not there; it was only a searcher's light. 7250 7251 Three dreadful days and nights dragged their tedious hours along, and 7252 the village sank into a hopeless stupor. No one had heart for anything. 7253 The accidental discovery, just made, that the proprietor of the 7254 Temperance Tavern kept liquor on his premises, scarcely fluttered the 7255 public pulse, tremendous as the fact was. In a lucid interval, Huck 7256 feebly led up to the subject of taverns, and finally asked--dimly 7257 dreading the worst--if anything had been discovered at the Temperance 7258 Tavern since he had been ill. 7259 7260 "Yes," said the widow. 7261 7262 Huck started up in bed, wild-eyed: 7263 7264 "What? What was it?" 7265 7266 "Liquor!--and the place has been shut up. Lie down, child--what a turn 7267 you did give me!" 7268 7269 "Only tell me just one thing--only just one--please! Was it Tom Sawyer 7270 that found it?" 7271 7272 The widow burst into tears. "Hush, hush, child, hush! I've told you 7273 before, you must NOT talk. You are very, very sick!" 7274 7275 Then nothing but liquor had been found; there would have been a great 7276 powwow if it had been the gold. So the treasure was gone forever--gone 7277 forever! But what could she be crying about? Curious that she should 7278 cry. 7279 7280 These thoughts worked their dim way through Huck's mind, and under the 7281 weariness they gave him he fell asleep. The widow said to herself: 7282 7283 "There--he's asleep, poor wreck. Tom Sawyer find it! Pity but somebody 7284 could find Tom Sawyer! Ah, there ain't many left, now, that's got hope 7285 enough, or strength enough, either, to go on searching." 7286 7287 7288 7289 CHAPTER XXXI 7290 7291 NOW to return to Tom and Becky's share in the picnic. They tripped 7292 along the murky aisles with the rest of the company, visiting the 7293 familiar wonders of the cave--wonders dubbed with rather 7294 over-descriptive names, such as "The Drawing-Room," "The Cathedral," 7295 "Aladdin's Palace," and so on. Presently the hide-and-seek frolicking 7296 began, and Tom and Becky engaged in it with zeal until the exertion 7297 began to grow a trifle wearisome; then they wandered down a sinuous 7298 avenue holding their candles aloft and reading the tangled web-work of 7299 names, dates, post-office addresses, and mottoes with which the rocky 7300 walls had been frescoed (in candle-smoke). Still drifting along and 7301 talking, they scarcely noticed that they were now in a part of the cave 7302 whose walls were not frescoed. They smoked their own names under an 7303 overhanging shelf and moved on. Presently they came to a place where a 7304 little stream of water, trickling over a ledge and carrying a limestone 7305 sediment with it, had, in the slow-dragging ages, formed a laced and 7306 ruffled Niagara in gleaming and imperishable stone. Tom squeezed his 7307 small body behind it in order to illuminate it for Becky's 7308 gratification. He found that it curtained a sort of steep natural 7309 stairway which was enclosed between narrow walls, and at once the 7310 ambition to be a discoverer seized him. Becky responded to his call, 7311 and they made a smoke-mark for future guidance, and started upon their 7312 quest. They wound this way and that, far down into the secret depths of 7313 the cave, made another mark, and branched off in search of novelties to 7314 tell the upper world about. In one place they found a spacious cavern, 7315 from whose ceiling depended a multitude of shining stalactites of the 7316 length and circumference of a man's leg; they walked all about it, 7317 wondering and admiring, and presently left it by one of the numerous 7318 passages that opened into it. This shortly brought them to a bewitching 7319 spring, whose basin was incrusted with a frostwork of glittering 7320 crystals; it was in the midst of a cavern whose walls were supported by 7321 many fantastic pillars which had been formed by the joining of great 7322 stalactites and stalagmites together, the result of the ceaseless 7323 water-drip of centuries. Under the roof vast knots of bats had packed 7324 themselves together, thousands in a bunch; the lights disturbed the 7325 creatures and they came flocking down by hundreds, squeaking and 7326 darting furiously at the candles. Tom knew their ways and the danger of 7327 this sort of conduct. He seized Becky's hand and hurried her into the 7328 first corridor that offered; and none too soon, for a bat struck 7329 Becky's light out with its wing while she was passing out of the 7330 cavern. The bats chased the children a good distance; but the fugitives 7331 plunged into every new passage that offered, and at last got rid of the 7332 perilous things. Tom found a subterranean lake, shortly, which 7333 stretched its dim length away until its shape was lost in the shadows. 7334 He wanted to explore its borders, but concluded that it would be best 7335 to sit down and rest awhile, first. Now, for the first time, the deep 7336 stillness of the place laid a clammy hand upon the spirits of the 7337 children. Becky said: 7338 7339 "Why, I didn't notice, but it seems ever so long since I heard any of 7340 the others." 7341 7342 "Come to think, Becky, we are away down below them--and I don't know 7343 how far away north, or south, or east, or whichever it is. We couldn't 7344 hear them here." 7345 7346 Becky grew apprehensive. 7347 7348 "I wonder how long we've been down here, Tom? We better start back." 7349 7350 "Yes, I reckon we better. P'raps we better." 7351 7352 "Can you find the way, Tom? It's all a mixed-up crookedness to me." 7353 7354 "I reckon I could find it--but then the bats. If they put our candles 7355 out it will be an awful fix. Let's try some other way, so as not to go 7356 through there." 7357 7358 "Well. But I hope we won't get lost. It would be so awful!" and the 7359 girl shuddered at the thought of the dreadful possibilities. 7360 7361 They started through a corridor, and traversed it in silence a long 7362 way, glancing at each new opening, to see if there was anything 7363 familiar about the look of it; but they were all strange. Every time 7364 Tom made an examination, Becky would watch his face for an encouraging 7365 sign, and he would say cheerily: 7366 7367 "Oh, it's all right. This ain't the one, but we'll come to it right 7368 away!" 7369 7370 But he felt less and less hopeful with each failure, and presently 7371 began to turn off into diverging avenues at sheer random, in desperate 7372 hope of finding the one that was wanted. He still said it was "all 7373 right," but there was such a leaden dread at his heart that the words 7374 had lost their ring and sounded just as if he had said, "All is lost!" 7375 Becky clung to his side in an anguish of fear, and tried hard to keep 7376 back the tears, but they would come. At last she said: 7377 7378 "Oh, Tom, never mind the bats, let's go back that way! We seem to get 7379 worse and worse off all the time." 7380 7381 "Listen!" said he. 7382 7383 Profound silence; silence so deep that even their breathings were 7384 conspicuous in the hush. Tom shouted. The call went echoing down the 7385 empty aisles and died out in the distance in a faint sound that 7386 resembled a ripple of mocking laughter. 7387 7388 "Oh, don't do it again, Tom, it is too horrid," said Becky. 7389 7390 "It is horrid, but I better, Becky; they might hear us, you know," and 7391 he shouted again. 7392 7393 The "might" was even a chillier horror than the ghostly laughter, it 7394 so confessed a perishing hope. The children stood still and listened; 7395 but there was no result. Tom turned upon the back track at once, and 7396 hurried his steps. It was but a little while before a certain 7397 indecision in his manner revealed another fearful fact to Becky--he 7398 could not find his way back! 7399 7400 "Oh, Tom, you didn't make any marks!" 7401 7402 "Becky, I was such a fool! Such a fool! I never thought we might want 7403 to come back! No--I can't find the way. It's all mixed up." 7404 7405 "Tom, Tom, we're lost! we're lost! We never can get out of this awful 7406 place! Oh, why DID we ever leave the others!" 7407 7408 She sank to the ground and burst into such a frenzy of crying that Tom 7409 was appalled with the idea that she might die, or lose her reason. He 7410 sat down by her and put his arms around her; she buried her face in his 7411 bosom, she clung to him, she poured out her terrors, her unavailing 7412 regrets, and the far echoes turned them all to jeering laughter. Tom 7413 begged her to pluck up hope again, and she said she could not. He fell 7414 to blaming and abusing himself for getting her into this miserable 7415 situation; this had a better effect. She said she would try to hope 7416 again, she would get up and follow wherever he might lead if only he 7417 would not talk like that any more. For he was no more to blame than 7418 she, she said. 7419 7420 So they moved on again--aimlessly--simply at random--all they could do 7421 was to move, keep moving. For a little while, hope made a show of 7422 reviving--not with any reason to back it, but only because it is its 7423 nature to revive when the spring has not been taken out of it by age 7424 and familiarity with failure. 7425 7426 By-and-by Tom took Becky's candle and blew it out. This economy meant 7427 so much! Words were not needed. Becky understood, and her hope died 7428 again. She knew that Tom had a whole candle and three or four pieces in 7429 his pockets--yet he must economize. 7430 7431 By-and-by, fatigue began to assert its claims; the children tried to 7432 pay attention, for it was dreadful to think of sitting down when time 7433 was grown to be so precious, moving, in some direction, in any 7434 direction, was at least progress and might bear fruit; but to sit down 7435 was to invite death and shorten its pursuit. 7436 7437 At last Becky's frail limbs refused to carry her farther. She sat 7438 down. Tom rested with her, and they talked of home, and the friends 7439 there, and the comfortable beds and, above all, the light! Becky cried, 7440 and Tom tried to think of some way of comforting her, but all his 7441 encouragements were grown threadbare with use, and sounded like 7442 sarcasms. Fatigue bore so heavily upon Becky that she drowsed off to 7443 sleep. Tom was grateful. He sat looking into her drawn face and saw it 7444 grow smooth and natural under the influence of pleasant dreams; and 7445 by-and-by a smile dawned and rested there. The peaceful face reflected 7446 somewhat of peace and healing into his own spirit, and his thoughts 7447 wandered away to bygone times and dreamy memories. While he was deep in 7448 his musings, Becky woke up with a breezy little laugh--but it was 7449 stricken dead upon her lips, and a groan followed it. 7450 7451 "Oh, how COULD I sleep! I wish I never, never had waked! No! No, I 7452 don't, Tom! Don't look so! I won't say it again." 7453 7454 "I'm glad you've slept, Becky; you'll feel rested, now, and we'll find 7455 the way out." 7456 7457 "We can try, Tom; but I've seen such a beautiful country in my dream. 7458 I reckon we are going there." 7459 7460 "Maybe not, maybe not. Cheer up, Becky, and let's go on trying." 7461 7462 They rose up and wandered along, hand in hand and hopeless. They tried 7463 to estimate how long they had been in the cave, but all they knew was 7464 that it seemed days and weeks, and yet it was plain that this could not 7465 be, for their candles were not gone yet. A long time after this--they 7466 could not tell how long--Tom said they must go softly and listen for 7467 dripping water--they must find a spring. They found one presently, and 7468 Tom said it was time to rest again. Both were cruelly tired, yet Becky 7469 said she thought she could go a little farther. She was surprised to 7470 hear Tom dissent. She could not understand it. They sat down, and Tom 7471 fastened his candle to the wall in front of them with some clay. 7472 Thought was soon busy; nothing was said for some time. Then Becky broke 7473 the silence: 7474 7475 "Tom, I am so hungry!" 7476 7477 Tom took something out of his pocket. 7478 7479 "Do you remember this?" said he. 7480 7481 Becky almost smiled. 7482 7483 "It's our wedding-cake, Tom." 7484 7485 "Yes--I wish it was as big as a barrel, for it's all we've got." 7486 7487 "I saved it from the picnic for us to dream on, Tom, the way grown-up 7488 people do with wedding-cake--but it'll be our--" 7489 7490 She dropped the sentence where it was. Tom divided the cake and Becky 7491 ate with good appetite, while Tom nibbled at his moiety. There was 7492 abundance of cold water to finish the feast with. By-and-by Becky 7493 suggested that they move on again. Tom was silent a moment. Then he 7494 said: 7495 7496 "Becky, can you bear it if I tell you something?" 7497 7498 Becky's face paled, but she thought she could. 7499 7500 "Well, then, Becky, we must stay here, where there's water to drink. 7501 That little piece is our last candle!" 7502 7503 Becky gave loose to tears and wailings. Tom did what he could to 7504 comfort her, but with little effect. At length Becky said: 7505 7506 "Tom!" 7507 7508 "Well, Becky?" 7509 7510 "They'll miss us and hunt for us!" 7511 7512 "Yes, they will! Certainly they will!" 7513 7514 "Maybe they're hunting for us now, Tom." 7515 7516 "Why, I reckon maybe they are. I hope they are." 7517 7518 "When would they miss us, Tom?" 7519 7520 "When they get back to the boat, I reckon." 7521 7522 "Tom, it might be dark then--would they notice we hadn't come?" 7523 7524 "I don't know. But anyway, your mother would miss you as soon as they 7525 got home." 7526 7527 A frightened look in Becky's face brought Tom to his senses and he saw 7528 that he had made a blunder. Becky was not to have gone home that night! 7529 The children became silent and thoughtful. In a moment a new burst of 7530 grief from Becky showed Tom that the thing in his mind had struck hers 7531 also--that the Sabbath morning might be half spent before Mrs. Thatcher 7532 discovered that Becky was not at Mrs. Harper's. 7533 7534 The children fastened their eyes upon their bit of candle and watched 7535 it melt slowly and pitilessly away; saw the half inch of wick stand 7536 alone at last; saw the feeble flame rise and fall, climb the thin 7537 column of smoke, linger at its top a moment, and then--the horror of 7538 utter darkness reigned! 7539 7540 How long afterward it was that Becky came to a slow consciousness that 7541 she was crying in Tom's arms, neither could tell. All that they knew 7542 was, that after what seemed a mighty stretch of time, both awoke out of 7543 a dead stupor of sleep and resumed their miseries once more. Tom said 7544 it might be Sunday, now--maybe Monday. He tried to get Becky to talk, 7545 but her sorrows were too oppressive, all her hopes were gone. Tom said 7546 that they must have been missed long ago, and no doubt the search was 7547 going on. He would shout and maybe some one would come. He tried it; 7548 but in the darkness the distant echoes sounded so hideously that he 7549 tried it no more. 7550 7551 The hours wasted away, and hunger came to torment the captives again. 7552 A portion of Tom's half of the cake was left; they divided and ate it. 7553 But they seemed hungrier than before. The poor morsel of food only 7554 whetted desire. 7555 7556 By-and-by Tom said: 7557 7558 "SH! Did you hear that?" 7559 7560 Both held their breath and listened. There was a sound like the 7561 faintest, far-off shout. Instantly Tom answered it, and leading Becky 7562 by the hand, started groping down the corridor in its direction. 7563 Presently he listened again; again the sound was heard, and apparently 7564 a little nearer. 7565 7566 "It's them!" said Tom; "they're coming! Come along, Becky--we're all 7567 right now!" 7568 7569 The joy of the prisoners was almost overwhelming. Their speed was 7570 slow, however, because pitfalls were somewhat common, and had to be 7571 guarded against. They shortly came to one and had to stop. It might be 7572 three feet deep, it might be a hundred--there was no passing it at any 7573 rate. Tom got down on his breast and reached as far down as he could. 7574 No bottom. They must stay there and wait until the searchers came. They 7575 listened; evidently the distant shoutings were growing more distant! a 7576 moment or two more and they had gone altogether. The heart-sinking 7577 misery of it! Tom whooped until he was hoarse, but it was of no use. He 7578 talked hopefully to Becky; but an age of anxious waiting passed and no 7579 sounds came again. 7580 7581 The children groped their way back to the spring. The weary time 7582 dragged on; they slept again, and awoke famished and woe-stricken. Tom 7583 believed it must be Tuesday by this time. 7584 7585 Now an idea struck him. There were some side passages near at hand. It 7586 would be better to explore some of these than bear the weight of the 7587 heavy time in idleness. He took a kite-line from his pocket, tied it to 7588 a projection, and he and Becky started, Tom in the lead, unwinding the 7589 line as he groped along. At the end of twenty steps the corridor ended 7590 in a "jumping-off place." Tom got down on his knees and felt below, and 7591 then as far around the corner as he could reach with his hands 7592 conveniently; he made an effort to stretch yet a little farther to the 7593 right, and at that moment, not twenty yards away, a human hand, holding 7594 a candle, appeared from behind a rock! Tom lifted up a glorious shout, 7595 and instantly that hand was followed by the body it belonged to--Injun 7596 Joe's! Tom was paralyzed; he could not move. He was vastly gratified 7597 the next moment, to see the "Spaniard" take to his heels and get 7598 himself out of sight. Tom wondered that Joe had not recognized his 7599 voice and come over and killed him for testifying in court. But the 7600 echoes must have disguised the voice. Without doubt, that was it, he 7601 reasoned. Tom's fright weakened every muscle in his body. He said to 7602 himself that if he had strength enough to get back to the spring he 7603 would stay there, and nothing should tempt him to run the risk of 7604 meeting Injun Joe again. He was careful to keep from Becky what it was 7605 he had seen. He told her he had only shouted "for luck." 7606 7607 But hunger and wretchedness rise superior to fears in the long run. 7608 Another tedious wait at the spring and another long sleep brought 7609 changes. The children awoke tortured with a raging hunger. Tom believed 7610 that it must be Wednesday or Thursday or even Friday or Saturday, now, 7611 and that the search had been given over. He proposed to explore another 7612 passage. He felt willing to risk Injun Joe and all other terrors. But 7613 Becky was very weak. She had sunk into a dreary apathy and would not be 7614 roused. She said she would wait, now, where she was, and die--it would 7615 not be long. She told Tom to go with the kite-line and explore if he 7616 chose; but she implored him to come back every little while and speak 7617 to her; and she made him promise that when the awful time came, he 7618 would stay by her and hold her hand until all was over. 7619 7620 Tom kissed her, with a choking sensation in his throat, and made a 7621 show of being confident of finding the searchers or an escape from the 7622 cave; then he took the kite-line in his hand and went groping down one 7623 of the passages on his hands and knees, distressed with hunger and sick 7624 with bodings of coming doom. 7625 7626 7627 7628 CHAPTER XXXII 7629 7630 TUESDAY afternoon came, and waned to the twilight. The village of St. 7631 Petersburg still mourned. The lost children had not been found. Public 7632 prayers had been offered up for them, and many and many a private 7633 prayer that had the petitioner's whole heart in it; but still no good 7634 news came from the cave. The majority of the searchers had given up the 7635 quest and gone back to their daily avocations, saying that it was plain 7636 the children could never be found. Mrs. Thatcher was very ill, and a 7637 great part of the time delirious. People said it was heartbreaking to 7638 hear her call her child, and raise her head and listen a whole minute 7639 at a time, then lay it wearily down again with a moan. Aunt Polly had 7640 drooped into a settled melancholy, and her gray hair had grown almost 7641 white. The village went to its rest on Tuesday night, sad and forlorn. 7642 7643 Away in the middle of the night a wild peal burst from the village 7644 bells, and in a moment the streets were swarming with frantic half-clad 7645 people, who shouted, "Turn out! turn out! they're found! they're 7646 found!" Tin pans and horns were added to the din, the population massed 7647 itself and moved toward the river, met the children coming in an open 7648 carriage drawn by shouting citizens, thronged around it, joined its 7649 homeward march, and swept magnificently up the main street roaring 7650 huzzah after huzzah! 7651 7652 The village was illuminated; nobody went to bed again; it was the 7653 greatest night the little town had ever seen. During the first half-hour 7654 a procession of villagers filed through Judge Thatcher's house, seized 7655 the saved ones and kissed them, squeezed Mrs. Thatcher's hand, tried to 7656 speak but couldn't--and drifted out raining tears all over the place. 7657 7658 Aunt Polly's happiness was complete, and Mrs. Thatcher's nearly so. It 7659 would be complete, however, as soon as the messenger dispatched with 7660 the great news to the cave should get the word to her husband. Tom lay 7661 upon a sofa with an eager auditory about him and told the history of 7662 the wonderful adventure, putting in many striking additions to adorn it 7663 withal; and closed with a description of how he left Becky and went on 7664 an exploring expedition; how he followed two avenues as far as his 7665 kite-line would reach; how he followed a third to the fullest stretch of 7666 the kite-line, and was about to turn back when he glimpsed a far-off 7667 speck that looked like daylight; dropped the line and groped toward it, 7668 pushed his head and shoulders through a small hole, and saw the broad 7669 Mississippi rolling by! And if it had only happened to be night he would 7670 not have seen that speck of daylight and would not have explored that 7671 passage any more! He told how he went back for Becky and broke the good 7672 news and she told him not to fret her with such stuff, for she was 7673 tired, and knew she was going to die, and wanted to. He described how he 7674 labored with her and convinced her; and how she almost died for joy when 7675 she had groped to where she actually saw the blue speck of daylight; how 7676 he pushed his way out at the hole and then helped her out; how they sat 7677 there and cried for gladness; how some men came along in a skiff and Tom 7678 hailed them and told them their situation and their famished condition; 7679 how the men didn't believe the wild tale at first, "because," said they, 7680 "you are five miles down the river below the valley the cave is in" 7681 --then took them aboard, rowed to a house, gave them supper, made them 7682 rest till two or three hours after dark and then brought them home. 7683 7684 Before day-dawn, Judge Thatcher and the handful of searchers with him 7685 were tracked out, in the cave, by the twine clews they had strung 7686 behind them, and informed of the great news. 7687 7688 Three days and nights of toil and hunger in the cave were not to be 7689 shaken off at once, as Tom and Becky soon discovered. They were 7690 bedridden all of Wednesday and Thursday, and seemed to grow more and 7691 more tired and worn, all the time. Tom got about, a little, on 7692 Thursday, was down-town Friday, and nearly as whole as ever Saturday; 7693 but Becky did not leave her room until Sunday, and then she looked as 7694 if she had passed through a wasting illness. 7695 7696 Tom learned of Huck's sickness and went to see him on Friday, but 7697 could not be admitted to the bedroom; neither could he on Saturday or 7698 Sunday. He was admitted daily after that, but was warned to keep still 7699 about his adventure and introduce no exciting topic. The Widow Douglas 7700 stayed by to see that he obeyed. At home Tom learned of the Cardiff 7701 Hill event; also that the "ragged man's" body had eventually been found 7702 in the river near the ferry-landing; he had been drowned while trying 7703 to escape, perhaps. 7704 7705 About a fortnight after Tom's rescue from the cave, he started off to 7706 visit Huck, who had grown plenty strong enough, now, to hear exciting 7707 talk, and Tom had some that would interest him, he thought. Judge 7708 Thatcher's house was on Tom's way, and he stopped to see Becky. The 7709 Judge and some friends set Tom to talking, and some one asked him 7710 ironically if he wouldn't like to go to the cave again. Tom said he 7711 thought he wouldn't mind it. The Judge said: 7712 7713 "Well, there are others just like you, Tom, I've not the least doubt. 7714 But we have taken care of that. Nobody will get lost in that cave any 7715 more." 7716 7717 "Why?" 7718 7719 "Because I had its big door sheathed with boiler iron two weeks ago, 7720 and triple-locked--and I've got the keys." 7721 7722 Tom turned as white as a sheet. 7723 7724 "What's the matter, boy! Here, run, somebody! Fetch a glass of water!" 7725 7726 The water was brought and thrown into Tom's face. 7727 7728 "Ah, now you're all right. What was the matter with you, Tom?" 7729 7730 "Oh, Judge, Injun Joe's in the cave!" 7731 7732 7733 7734 CHAPTER XXXIII 7735 7736 WITHIN a few minutes the news had spread, and a dozen skiff-loads of 7737 men were on their way to McDougal's cave, and the ferryboat, well 7738 filled with passengers, soon followed. Tom Sawyer was in the skiff that 7739 bore Judge Thatcher. 7740 7741 When the cave door was unlocked, a sorrowful sight presented itself in 7742 the dim twilight of the place. Injun Joe lay stretched upon the ground, 7743 dead, with his face close to the crack of the door, as if his longing 7744 eyes had been fixed, to the latest moment, upon the light and the cheer 7745 of the free world outside. Tom was touched, for he knew by his own 7746 experience how this wretch had suffered. His pity was moved, but 7747 nevertheless he felt an abounding sense of relief and security, now, 7748 which revealed to him in a degree which he had not fully appreciated 7749 before how vast a weight of dread had been lying upon him since the day 7750 he lifted his voice against this bloody-minded outcast. 7751 7752 Injun Joe's bowie-knife lay close by, its blade broken in two. The 7753 great foundation-beam of the door had been chipped and hacked through, 7754 with tedious labor; useless labor, too, it was, for the native rock 7755 formed a sill outside it, and upon that stubborn material the knife had 7756 wrought no effect; the only damage done was to the knife itself. But if 7757 there had been no stony obstruction there the labor would have been 7758 useless still, for if the beam had been wholly cut away Injun Joe could 7759 not have squeezed his body under the door, and he knew it. So he had 7760 only hacked that place in order to be doing something--in order to pass 7761 the weary time--in order to employ his tortured faculties. Ordinarily 7762 one could find half a dozen bits of candle stuck around in the crevices 7763 of this vestibule, left there by tourists; but there were none now. The 7764 prisoner had searched them out and eaten them. He had also contrived to 7765 catch a few bats, and these, also, he had eaten, leaving only their 7766 claws. The poor unfortunate had starved to death. In one place, near at 7767 hand, a stalagmite had been slowly growing up from the ground for ages, 7768 builded by the water-drip from a stalactite overhead. The captive had 7769 broken off the stalagmite, and upon the stump had placed a stone, 7770 wherein he had scooped a shallow hollow to catch the precious drop 7771 that fell once in every three minutes with the dreary regularity of a 7772 clock-tick--a dessertspoonful once in four and twenty hours. That drop 7773 was falling when the Pyramids were new; when Troy fell; when the 7774 foundations of Rome were laid; when Christ was crucified; when the 7775 Conqueror created the British empire; when Columbus sailed; when the 7776 massacre at Lexington was "news." It is falling now; it will still be 7777 falling when all these things shall have sunk down the afternoon of 7778 history, and the twilight of tradition, and been swallowed up in the 7779 thick night of oblivion. Has everything a purpose and a mission? Did 7780 this drop fall patiently during five thousand years to be ready for 7781 this flitting human insect's need? and has it another important object 7782 to accomplish ten thousand years to come? No matter. It is many and 7783 many a year since the hapless half-breed scooped out the stone to catch 7784 the priceless drops, but to this day the tourist stares longest at that 7785 pathetic stone and that slow-dropping water when he comes to see the 7786 wonders of McDougal's cave. Injun Joe's cup stands first in the list of 7787 the cavern's marvels; even "Aladdin's Palace" cannot rival it. 7788 7789 Injun Joe was buried near the mouth of the cave; and people flocked 7790 there in boats and wagons from the towns and from all the farms and 7791 hamlets for seven miles around; they brought their children, and all 7792 sorts of provisions, and confessed that they had had almost as 7793 satisfactory a time at the funeral as they could have had at the 7794 hanging. 7795 7796 This funeral stopped the further growth of one thing--the petition to 7797 the governor for Injun Joe's pardon. The petition had been largely 7798 signed; many tearful and eloquent meetings had been held, and a 7799 committee of sappy women been appointed to go in deep mourning and wail 7800 around the governor, and implore him to be a merciful ass and trample 7801 his duty under foot. Injun Joe was believed to have killed five 7802 citizens of the village, but what of that? If he had been Satan himself 7803 there would have been plenty of weaklings ready to scribble their names 7804 to a pardon-petition, and drip a tear on it from their permanently 7805 impaired and leaky water-works. 7806 7807 The morning after the funeral Tom took Huck to a private place to have 7808 an important talk. Huck had learned all about Tom's adventure from the 7809 Welshman and the Widow Douglas, by this time, but Tom said he reckoned 7810 there was one thing they had not told him; that thing was what he 7811 wanted to talk about now. Huck's face saddened. He said: 7812 7813 "I know what it is. You got into No. 2 and never found anything but 7814 whiskey. Nobody told me it was you; but I just knowed it must 'a' ben 7815 you, soon as I heard 'bout that whiskey business; and I knowed you 7816 hadn't got the money becuz you'd 'a' got at me some way or other and 7817 told me even if you was mum to everybody else. Tom, something's always 7818 told me we'd never get holt of that swag." 7819 7820 "Why, Huck, I never told on that tavern-keeper. YOU know his tavern 7821 was all right the Saturday I went to the picnic. Don't you remember you 7822 was to watch there that night?" 7823 7824 "Oh yes! Why, it seems 'bout a year ago. It was that very night that I 7825 follered Injun Joe to the widder's." 7826 7827 "YOU followed him?" 7828 7829 "Yes--but you keep mum. I reckon Injun Joe's left friends behind him, 7830 and I don't want 'em souring on me and doing me mean tricks. If it 7831 hadn't ben for me he'd be down in Texas now, all right." 7832 7833 Then Huck told his entire adventure in confidence to Tom, who had only 7834 heard of the Welshman's part of it before. 7835 7836 "Well," said Huck, presently, coming back to the main question, 7837 "whoever nipped the whiskey in No. 2, nipped the money, too, I reckon 7838 --anyways it's a goner for us, Tom." 7839 7840 "Huck, that money wasn't ever in No. 2!" 7841 7842 "What!" Huck searched his comrade's face keenly. "Tom, have you got on 7843 the track of that money again?" 7844 7845 "Huck, it's in the cave!" 7846 7847 Huck's eyes blazed. 7848 7849 "Say it again, Tom." 7850 7851 "The money's in the cave!" 7852 7853 "Tom--honest injun, now--is it fun, or earnest?" 7854 7855 "Earnest, Huck--just as earnest as ever I was in my life. Will you go 7856 in there with me and help get it out?" 7857 7858 "I bet I will! I will if it's where we can blaze our way to it and not 7859 get lost." 7860 7861 "Huck, we can do that without the least little bit of trouble in the 7862 world." 7863 7864 "Good as wheat! What makes you think the money's--" 7865 7866 "Huck, you just wait till we get in there. If we don't find it I'll 7867 agree to give you my drum and every thing I've got in the world. I 7868 will, by jings." 7869 7870 "All right--it's a whiz. When do you say?" 7871 7872 "Right now, if you say it. Are you strong enough?" 7873 7874 "Is it far in the cave? I ben on my pins a little, three or four days, 7875 now, but I can't walk more'n a mile, Tom--least I don't think I could." 7876 7877 "It's about five mile into there the way anybody but me would go, 7878 Huck, but there's a mighty short cut that they don't anybody but me 7879 know about. Huck, I'll take you right to it in a skiff. I'll float the 7880 skiff down there, and I'll pull it back again all by myself. You 7881 needn't ever turn your hand over." 7882 7883 "Less start right off, Tom." 7884 7885 "All right. We want some bread and meat, and our pipes, and a little 7886 bag or two, and two or three kite-strings, and some of these 7887 new-fangled things they call lucifer matches. I tell you, many's 7888 the time I wished I had some when I was in there before." 7889 7890 A trifle after noon the boys borrowed a small skiff from a citizen who 7891 was absent, and got under way at once. When they were several miles 7892 below "Cave Hollow," Tom said: 7893 7894 "Now you see this bluff here looks all alike all the way down from the 7895 cave hollow--no houses, no wood-yards, bushes all alike. But do you see 7896 that white place up yonder where there's been a landslide? Well, that's 7897 one of my marks. We'll get ashore, now." 7898 7899 They landed. 7900 7901 "Now, Huck, where we're a-standing you could touch that hole I got out 7902 of with a fishing-pole. See if you can find it." 7903 7904 Huck searched all the place about, and found nothing. Tom proudly 7905 marched into a thick clump of sumach bushes and said: 7906 7907 "Here you are! Look at it, Huck; it's the snuggest hole in this 7908 country. You just keep mum about it. All along I've been wanting to be 7909 a robber, but I knew I'd got to have a thing like this, and where to 7910 run across it was the bother. We've got it now, and we'll keep it 7911 quiet, only we'll let Joe Harper and Ben Rogers in--because of course 7912 there's got to be a Gang, or else there wouldn't be any style about it. 7913 Tom Sawyer's Gang--it sounds splendid, don't it, Huck?" 7914 7915 "Well, it just does, Tom. And who'll we rob?" 7916 7917 "Oh, most anybody. Waylay people--that's mostly the way." 7918 7919 "And kill them?" 7920 7921 "No, not always. Hive them in the cave till they raise a ransom." 7922 7923 "What's a ransom?" 7924 7925 "Money. You make them raise all they can, off'n their friends; and 7926 after you've kept them a year, if it ain't raised then you kill them. 7927 That's the general way. Only you don't kill the women. You shut up the 7928 women, but you don't kill them. They're always beautiful and rich, and 7929 awfully scared. You take their watches and things, but you always take 7930 your hat off and talk polite. They ain't anybody as polite as robbers 7931 --you'll see that in any book. Well, the women get to loving you, and 7932 after they've been in the cave a week or two weeks they stop crying and 7933 after that you couldn't get them to leave. If you drove them out they'd 7934 turn right around and come back. It's so in all the books." 7935 7936 "Why, it's real bully, Tom. I believe it's better'n to be a pirate." 7937 7938 "Yes, it's better in some ways, because it's close to home and 7939 circuses and all that." 7940 7941 By this time everything was ready and the boys entered the hole, Tom 7942 in the lead. They toiled their way to the farther end of the tunnel, 7943 then made their spliced kite-strings fast and moved on. A few steps 7944 brought them to the spring, and Tom felt a shudder quiver all through 7945 him. He showed Huck the fragment of candle-wick perched on a lump of 7946 clay against the wall, and described how he and Becky had watched the 7947 flame struggle and expire. 7948 7949 The boys began to quiet down to whispers, now, for the stillness and 7950 gloom of the place oppressed their spirits. They went on, and presently 7951 entered and followed Tom's other corridor until they reached the 7952 "jumping-off place." The candles revealed the fact that it was not 7953 really a precipice, but only a steep clay hill twenty or thirty feet 7954 high. Tom whispered: 7955 7956 "Now I'll show you something, Huck." 7957 7958 He held his candle aloft and said: 7959 7960 "Look as far around the corner as you can. Do you see that? There--on 7961 the big rock over yonder--done with candle-smoke." 7962 7963 "Tom, it's a CROSS!" 7964 7965 "NOW where's your Number Two? 'UNDER THE CROSS,' hey? Right yonder's 7966 where I saw Injun Joe poke up his candle, Huck!" 7967 7968 Huck stared at the mystic sign awhile, and then said with a shaky voice: 7969 7970 "Tom, less git out of here!" 7971 7972 "What! and leave the treasure?" 7973 7974 "Yes--leave it. Injun Joe's ghost is round about there, certain." 7975 7976 "No it ain't, Huck, no it ain't. It would ha'nt the place where he 7977 died--away out at the mouth of the cave--five mile from here." 7978 7979 "No, Tom, it wouldn't. It would hang round the money. I know the ways 7980 of ghosts, and so do you." 7981 7982 Tom began to fear that Huck was right. Misgivings gathered in his 7983 mind. But presently an idea occurred to him-- 7984 7985 "Lookyhere, Huck, what fools we're making of ourselves! Injun Joe's 7986 ghost ain't a going to come around where there's a cross!" 7987 7988 The point was well taken. It had its effect. 7989 7990 "Tom, I didn't think of that. But that's so. It's luck for us, that 7991 cross is. I reckon we'll climb down there and have a hunt for that box." 7992 7993 Tom went first, cutting rude steps in the clay hill as he descended. 7994 Huck followed. Four avenues opened out of the small cavern which the 7995 great rock stood in. The boys examined three of them with no result. 7996 They found a small recess in the one nearest the base of the rock, with 7997 a pallet of blankets spread down in it; also an old suspender, some 7998 bacon rind, and the well-gnawed bones of two or three fowls. But there 7999 was no money-box. The lads searched and researched this place, but in 8000 vain. Tom said: 8001 8002 "He said UNDER the cross. Well, this comes nearest to being under the 8003 cross. It can't be under the rock itself, because that sets solid on 8004 the ground." 8005 8006 They searched everywhere once more, and then sat down discouraged. 8007 Huck could suggest nothing. By-and-by Tom said: 8008 8009 "Lookyhere, Huck, there's footprints and some candle-grease on the 8010 clay about one side of this rock, but not on the other sides. Now, 8011 what's that for? I bet you the money IS under the rock. I'm going to 8012 dig in the clay." 8013 8014 "That ain't no bad notion, Tom!" said Huck with animation. 8015 8016 Tom's "real Barlow" was out at once, and he had not dug four inches 8017 before he struck wood. 8018 8019 "Hey, Huck!--you hear that?" 8020 8021 Huck began to dig and scratch now. Some boards were soon uncovered and 8022 removed. They had concealed a natural chasm which led under the rock. 8023 Tom got into this and held his candle as far under the rock as he 8024 could, but said he could not see to the end of the rift. He proposed to 8025 explore. He stooped and passed under; the narrow way descended 8026 gradually. He followed its winding course, first to the right, then to 8027 the left, Huck at his heels. Tom turned a short curve, by-and-by, and 8028 exclaimed: 8029 8030 "My goodness, Huck, lookyhere!" 8031 8032 It was the treasure-box, sure enough, occupying a snug little cavern, 8033 along with an empty powder-keg, a couple of guns in leather cases, two 8034 or three pairs of old moccasins, a leather belt, and some other rubbish 8035 well soaked with the water-drip. 8036 8037 "Got it at last!" said Huck, ploughing among the tarnished coins with 8038 his hand. "My, but we're rich, Tom!" 8039 8040 "Huck, I always reckoned we'd get it. It's just too good to believe, 8041 but we HAVE got it, sure! Say--let's not fool around here. Let's snake 8042 it out. Lemme see if I can lift the box." 8043 8044 It weighed about fifty pounds. Tom could lift it, after an awkward 8045 fashion, but could not carry it conveniently. 8046 8047 "I thought so," he said; "THEY carried it like it was heavy, that day 8048 at the ha'nted house. I noticed that. I reckon I was right to think of 8049 fetching the little bags along." 8050 8051 The money was soon in the bags and the boys took it up to the cross 8052 rock. 8053 8054 "Now less fetch the guns and things," said Huck. 8055 8056 "No, Huck--leave them there. They're just the tricks to have when we 8057 go to robbing. We'll keep them there all the time, and we'll hold our 8058 orgies there, too. It's an awful snug place for orgies." 8059 8060 "What orgies?" 8061 8062 "I dono. But robbers always have orgies, and of course we've got to 8063 have them, too. Come along, Huck, we've been in here a long time. It's 8064 getting late, I reckon. I'm hungry, too. We'll eat and smoke when we 8065 get to the skiff." 8066 8067 They presently emerged into the clump of sumach bushes, looked warily 8068 out, found the coast clear, and were soon lunching and smoking in the 8069 skiff. As the sun dipped toward the horizon they pushed out and got 8070 under way. Tom skimmed up the shore through the long twilight, chatting 8071 cheerily with Huck, and landed shortly after dark. 8072 8073 "Now, Huck," said Tom, "we'll hide the money in the loft of the 8074 widow's woodshed, and I'll come up in the morning and we'll count it 8075 and divide, and then we'll hunt up a place out in the woods for it 8076 where it will be safe. Just you lay quiet here and watch the stuff till 8077 I run and hook Benny Taylor's little wagon; I won't be gone a minute." 8078 8079 He disappeared, and presently returned with the wagon, put the two 8080 small sacks into it, threw some old rags on top of them, and started 8081 off, dragging his cargo behind him. When the boys reached the 8082 Welshman's house, they stopped to rest. Just as they were about to move 8083 on, the Welshman stepped out and said: 8084 8085 "Hallo, who's that?" 8086 8087 "Huck and Tom Sawyer." 8088 8089 "Good! Come along with me, boys, you are keeping everybody waiting. 8090 Here--hurry up, trot ahead--I'll haul the wagon for you. Why, it's not 8091 as light as it might be. Got bricks in it?--or old metal?" 8092 8093 "Old metal," said Tom. 8094 8095 "I judged so; the boys in this town will take more trouble and fool 8096 away more time hunting up six bits' worth of old iron to sell to the 8097 foundry than they would to make twice the money at regular work. But 8098 that's human nature--hurry along, hurry along!" 8099 8100 The boys wanted to know what the hurry was about. 8101 8102 "Never mind; you'll see, when we get to the Widow Douglas'." 8103 8104 Huck said with some apprehension--for he was long used to being 8105 falsely accused: 8106 8107 "Mr. Jones, we haven't been doing nothing." 8108 8109 The Welshman laughed. 8110 8111 "Well, I don't know, Huck, my boy. I don't know about that. Ain't you 8112 and the widow good friends?" 8113 8114 "Yes. Well, she's ben good friends to me, anyway." 8115 8116 "All right, then. What do you want to be afraid for?" 8117 8118 This question was not entirely answered in Huck's slow mind before he 8119 found himself pushed, along with Tom, into Mrs. Douglas' drawing-room. 8120 Mr. Jones left the wagon near the door and followed. 8121 8122 The place was grandly lighted, and everybody that was of any 8123 consequence in the village was there. The Thatchers were there, the 8124 Harpers, the Rogerses, Aunt Polly, Sid, Mary, the minister, the editor, 8125 and a great many more, and all dressed in their best. The widow 8126 received the boys as heartily as any one could well receive two such 8127 looking beings. They were covered with clay and candle-grease. Aunt 8128 Polly blushed crimson with humiliation, and frowned and shook her head 8129 at Tom. Nobody suffered half as much as the two boys did, however. Mr. 8130 Jones said: 8131 8132 "Tom wasn't at home, yet, so I gave him up; but I stumbled on him and 8133 Huck right at my door, and so I just brought them along in a hurry." 8134 8135 "And you did just right," said the widow. "Come with me, boys." 8136 8137 She took them to a bedchamber and said: 8138 8139 "Now wash and dress yourselves. Here are two new suits of clothes 8140 --shirts, socks, everything complete. They're Huck's--no, no thanks, 8141 Huck--Mr. Jones bought one and I the other. But they'll fit both of you. 8142 Get into them. We'll wait--come down when you are slicked up enough." 8143 8144 Then she left. 8145 8146 8147 8148 CHAPTER XXXIV 8149 8150 HUCK said: "Tom, we can slope, if we can find a rope. The window ain't 8151 high from the ground." 8152 8153 "Shucks! what do you want to slope for?" 8154 8155 "Well, I ain't used to that kind of a crowd. I can't stand it. I ain't 8156 going down there, Tom." 8157 8158 "Oh, bother! It ain't anything. I don't mind it a bit. I'll take care 8159 of you." 8160 8161 Sid appeared. 8162 8163 "Tom," said he, "auntie has been waiting for you all the afternoon. 8164 Mary got your Sunday clothes ready, and everybody's been fretting about 8165 you. Say--ain't this grease and clay, on your clothes?" 8166 8167 "Now, Mr. Siddy, you jist 'tend to your own business. What's all this 8168 blow-out about, anyway?" 8169 8170 "It's one of the widow's parties that she's always having. This time 8171 it's for the Welshman and his sons, on account of that scrape they 8172 helped her out of the other night. And say--I can tell you something, 8173 if you want to know." 8174 8175 "Well, what?" 8176 8177 "Why, old Mr. Jones is going to try to spring something on the people 8178 here to-night, but I overheard him tell auntie to-day about it, as a 8179 secret, but I reckon it's not much of a secret now. Everybody knows 8180 --the widow, too, for all she tries to let on she don't. Mr. Jones was 8181 bound Huck should be here--couldn't get along with his grand secret 8182 without Huck, you know!" 8183 8184 "Secret about what, Sid?" 8185 8186 "About Huck tracking the robbers to the widow's. I reckon Mr. Jones 8187 was going to make a grand time over his surprise, but I bet you it will 8188 drop pretty flat." 8189 8190 Sid chuckled in a very contented and satisfied way. 8191 8192 "Sid, was it you that told?" 8193 8194 "Oh, never mind who it was. SOMEBODY told--that's enough." 8195 8196 "Sid, there's only one person in this town mean enough to do that, and 8197 that's you. If you had been in Huck's place you'd 'a' sneaked down the 8198 hill and never told anybody on the robbers. You can't do any but mean 8199 things, and you can't bear to see anybody praised for doing good ones. 8200 There--no thanks, as the widow says"--and Tom cuffed Sid's ears and 8201 helped him to the door with several kicks. "Now go and tell auntie if 8202 you dare--and to-morrow you'll catch it!" 8203 8204 Some minutes later the widow's guests were at the supper-table, and a 8205 dozen children were propped up at little side-tables in the same room, 8206 after the fashion of that country and that day. At the proper time Mr. 8207 Jones made his little speech, in which he thanked the widow for the 8208 honor she was doing himself and his sons, but said that there was 8209 another person whose modesty-- 8210 8211 And so forth and so on. He sprung his secret about Huck's share in the 8212 adventure in the finest dramatic manner he was master of, but the 8213 surprise it occasioned was largely counterfeit and not as clamorous and 8214 effusive as it might have been under happier circumstances. However, 8215 the widow made a pretty fair show of astonishment, and heaped so many 8216 compliments and so much gratitude upon Huck that he almost forgot the 8217 nearly intolerable discomfort of his new clothes in the entirely 8218 intolerable discomfort of being set up as a target for everybody's gaze 8219 and everybody's laudations. 8220 8221 The widow said she meant to give Huck a home under her roof and have 8222 him educated; and that when she could spare the money she would start 8223 him in business in a modest way. Tom's chance was come. He said: 8224 8225 "Huck don't need it. Huck's rich." 8226 8227 Nothing but a heavy strain upon the good manners of the company kept 8228 back the due and proper complimentary laugh at this pleasant joke. But 8229 the silence was a little awkward. Tom broke it: 8230 8231 "Huck's got money. Maybe you don't believe it, but he's got lots of 8232 it. Oh, you needn't smile--I reckon I can show you. You just wait a 8233 minute." 8234 8235 Tom ran out of doors. The company looked at each other with a 8236 perplexed interest--and inquiringly at Huck, who was tongue-tied. 8237 8238 "Sid, what ails Tom?" said Aunt Polly. "He--well, there ain't ever any 8239 making of that boy out. I never--" 8240 8241 Tom entered, struggling with the weight of his sacks, and Aunt Polly 8242 did not finish her sentence. Tom poured the mass of yellow coin upon 8243 the table and said: 8244 8245 "There--what did I tell you? Half of it's Huck's and half of it's mine!" 8246 8247 The spectacle took the general breath away. All gazed, nobody spoke 8248 for a moment. Then there was a unanimous call for an explanation. Tom 8249 said he could furnish it, and he did. The tale was long, but brimful of 8250 interest. There was scarcely an interruption from any one to break the 8251 charm of its flow. When he had finished, Mr. Jones said: 8252 8253 "I thought I had fixed up a little surprise for this occasion, but it 8254 don't amount to anything now. This one makes it sing mighty small, I'm 8255 willing to allow." 8256 8257 The money was counted. The sum amounted to a little over twelve 8258 thousand dollars. It was more than any one present had ever seen at one 8259 time before, though several persons were there who were worth 8260 considerably more than that in property. 8261 8262 8263 8264 CHAPTER XXXV 8265 8266 THE reader may rest satisfied that Tom's and Huck's windfall made a 8267 mighty stir in the poor little village of St. Petersburg. So vast a 8268 sum, all in actual cash, seemed next to incredible. It was talked 8269 about, gloated over, glorified, until the reason of many of the 8270 citizens tottered under the strain of the unhealthy excitement. Every 8271 "haunted" house in St. Petersburg and the neighboring villages was 8272 dissected, plank by plank, and its foundations dug up and ransacked for 8273 hidden treasure--and not by boys, but men--pretty grave, unromantic 8274 men, too, some of them. Wherever Tom and Huck appeared they were 8275 courted, admired, stared at. The boys were not able to remember that 8276 their remarks had possessed weight before; but now their sayings were 8277 treasured and repeated; everything they did seemed somehow to be 8278 regarded as remarkable; they had evidently lost the power of doing and 8279 saying commonplace things; moreover, their past history was raked up 8280 and discovered to bear marks of conspicuous originality. The village 8281 paper published biographical sketches of the boys. 8282 8283 The Widow Douglas put Huck's money out at six per cent., and Judge 8284 Thatcher did the same with Tom's at Aunt Polly's request. Each lad had 8285 an income, now, that was simply prodigious--a dollar for every week-day 8286 in the year and half of the Sundays. It was just what the minister got 8287 --no, it was what he was promised--he generally couldn't collect it. A 8288 dollar and a quarter a week would board, lodge, and school a boy in 8289 those old simple days--and clothe him and wash him, too, for that 8290 matter. 8291 8292 Judge Thatcher had conceived a great opinion of Tom. He said that no 8293 commonplace boy would ever have got his daughter out of the cave. When 8294 Becky told her father, in strict confidence, how Tom had taken her 8295 whipping at school, the Judge was visibly moved; and when she pleaded 8296 grace for the mighty lie which Tom had told in order to shift that 8297 whipping from her shoulders to his own, the Judge said with a fine 8298 outburst that it was a noble, a generous, a magnanimous lie--a lie that 8299 was worthy to hold up its head and march down through history breast to 8300 breast with George Washington's lauded Truth about the hatchet! Becky 8301 thought her father had never looked so tall and so superb as when he 8302 walked the floor and stamped his foot and said that. She went straight 8303 off and told Tom about it. 8304 8305 Judge Thatcher hoped to see Tom a great lawyer or a great soldier some 8306 day. He said he meant to look to it that Tom should be admitted to the 8307 National Military Academy and afterward trained in the best law school 8308 in the country, in order that he might be ready for either career or 8309 both. 8310 8311 Huck Finn's wealth and the fact that he was now under the Widow 8312 Douglas' protection introduced him into society--no, dragged him into 8313 it, hurled him into it--and his sufferings were almost more than he 8314 could bear. The widow's servants kept him clean and neat, combed and 8315 brushed, and they bedded him nightly in unsympathetic sheets that had 8316 not one little spot or stain which he could press to his heart and know 8317 for a friend. He had to eat with a knife and fork; he had to use 8318 napkin, cup, and plate; he had to learn his book, he had to go to 8319 church; he had to talk so properly that speech was become insipid in 8320 his mouth; whithersoever he turned, the bars and shackles of 8321 civilization shut him in and bound him hand and foot. 8322 8323 He bravely bore his miseries three weeks, and then one day turned up 8324 missing. For forty-eight hours the widow hunted for him everywhere in 8325 great distress. The public were profoundly concerned; they searched 8326 high and low, they dragged the river for his body. Early the third 8327 morning Tom Sawyer wisely went poking among some old empty hogsheads 8328 down behind the abandoned slaughter-house, and in one of them he found 8329 the refugee. Huck had slept there; he had just breakfasted upon some 8330 stolen odds and ends of food, and was lying off, now, in comfort, with 8331 his pipe. He was unkempt, uncombed, and clad in the same old ruin of 8332 rags that had made him picturesque in the days when he was free and 8333 happy. Tom routed him out, told him the trouble he had been causing, 8334 and urged him to go home. Huck's face lost its tranquil content, and 8335 took a melancholy cast. He said: 8336 8337 "Don't talk about it, Tom. I've tried it, and it don't work; it don't 8338 work, Tom. It ain't for me; I ain't used to it. The widder's good to 8339 me, and friendly; but I can't stand them ways. She makes me get up just 8340 at the same time every morning; she makes me wash, they comb me all to 8341 thunder; she won't let me sleep in the woodshed; I got to wear them 8342 blamed clothes that just smothers me, Tom; they don't seem to any air 8343 git through 'em, somehow; and they're so rotten nice that I can't set 8344 down, nor lay down, nor roll around anywher's; I hain't slid on a 8345 cellar-door for--well, it 'pears to be years; I got to go to church and 8346 sweat and sweat--I hate them ornery sermons! I can't ketch a fly in 8347 there, I can't chaw. I got to wear shoes all Sunday. The widder eats by 8348 a bell; she goes to bed by a bell; she gits up by a bell--everything's 8349 so awful reg'lar a body can't stand it." 8350 8351 "Well, everybody does that way, Huck." 8352 8353 "Tom, it don't make no difference. I ain't everybody, and I can't 8354 STAND it. It's awful to be tied up so. And grub comes too easy--I don't 8355 take no interest in vittles, that way. I got to ask to go a-fishing; I 8356 got to ask to go in a-swimming--dern'd if I hain't got to ask to do 8357 everything. Well, I'd got to talk so nice it wasn't no comfort--I'd got 8358 to go up in the attic and rip out awhile, every day, to git a taste in 8359 my mouth, or I'd a died, Tom. The widder wouldn't let me smoke; she 8360 wouldn't let me yell, she wouldn't let me gape, nor stretch, nor 8361 scratch, before folks--" [Then with a spasm of special irritation and 8362 injury]--"And dad fetch it, she prayed all the time! I never see such a 8363 woman! I HAD to shove, Tom--I just had to. And besides, that school's 8364 going to open, and I'd a had to go to it--well, I wouldn't stand THAT, 8365 Tom. Looky here, Tom, being rich ain't what it's cracked up to be. It's 8366 just worry and worry, and sweat and sweat, and a-wishing you was dead 8367 all the time. Now these clothes suits me, and this bar'l suits me, and 8368 I ain't ever going to shake 'em any more. Tom, I wouldn't ever got into 8369 all this trouble if it hadn't 'a' ben for that money; now you just take 8370 my sheer of it along with your'n, and gimme a ten-center sometimes--not 8371 many times, becuz I don't give a dern for a thing 'thout it's tollable 8372 hard to git--and you go and beg off for me with the widder." 8373 8374 "Oh, Huck, you know I can't do that. 'Tain't fair; and besides if 8375 you'll try this thing just a while longer you'll come to like it." 8376 8377 "Like it! Yes--the way I'd like a hot stove if I was to set on it long 8378 enough. No, Tom, I won't be rich, and I won't live in them cussed 8379 smothery houses. I like the woods, and the river, and hogsheads, and 8380 I'll stick to 'em, too. Blame it all! just as we'd got guns, and a 8381 cave, and all just fixed to rob, here this dern foolishness has got to 8382 come up and spile it all!" 8383 8384 Tom saw his opportunity-- 8385 8386 "Lookyhere, Huck, being rich ain't going to keep me back from turning 8387 robber." 8388 8389 "No! Oh, good-licks; are you in real dead-wood earnest, Tom?" 8390 8391 "Just as dead earnest as I'm sitting here. But Huck, we can't let you 8392 into the gang if you ain't respectable, you know." 8393 8394 Huck's joy was quenched. 8395 8396 "Can't let me in, Tom? Didn't you let me go for a pirate?" 8397 8398 "Yes, but that's different. A robber is more high-toned than what a 8399 pirate is--as a general thing. In most countries they're awful high up 8400 in the nobility--dukes and such." 8401 8402 "Now, Tom, hain't you always ben friendly to me? You wouldn't shet me 8403 out, would you, Tom? You wouldn't do that, now, WOULD you, Tom?" 8404 8405 "Huck, I wouldn't want to, and I DON'T want to--but what would people 8406 say? Why, they'd say, 'Mph! Tom Sawyer's Gang! pretty low characters in 8407 it!' They'd mean you, Huck. You wouldn't like that, and I wouldn't." 8408 8409 Huck was silent for some time, engaged in a mental struggle. Finally 8410 he said: 8411 8412 "Well, I'll go back to the widder for a month and tackle it and see if 8413 I can come to stand it, if you'll let me b'long to the gang, Tom." 8414 8415 "All right, Huck, it's a whiz! Come along, old chap, and I'll ask the 8416 widow to let up on you a little, Huck." 8417 8418 "Will you, Tom--now will you? That's good. If she'll let up on some of 8419 the roughest things, I'll smoke private and cuss private, and crowd 8420 through or bust. When you going to start the gang and turn robbers?" 8421 8422 "Oh, right off. We'll get the boys together and have the initiation 8423 to-night, maybe." 8424 8425 "Have the which?" 8426 8427 "Have the initiation." 8428 8429 "What's that?" 8430 8431 "It's to swear to stand by one another, and never tell the gang's 8432 secrets, even if you're chopped all to flinders, and kill anybody and 8433 all his family that hurts one of the gang." 8434 8435 "That's gay--that's mighty gay, Tom, I tell you." 8436 8437 "Well, I bet it is. And all that swearing's got to be done at 8438 midnight, in the lonesomest, awfulest place you can find--a ha'nted 8439 house is the best, but they're all ripped up now." 8440 8441 "Well, midnight's good, anyway, Tom." 8442 8443 "Yes, so it is. And you've got to swear on a coffin, and sign it with 8444 blood." 8445 8446 "Now, that's something LIKE! Why, it's a million times bullier than 8447 pirating. I'll stick to the widder till I rot, Tom; and if I git to be 8448 a reg'lar ripper of a robber, and everybody talking 'bout it, I reckon 8449 she'll be proud she snaked me in out of the wet." 8450 8451 8452 8453 CONCLUSION 8454 8455 SO endeth this chronicle. It being strictly a history of a BOY, it 8456 must stop here; the story could not go much further without becoming 8457 the history of a MAN. When one writes a novel about grown people, he 8458 knows exactly where to stop--that is, with a marriage; but when he 8459 writes of juveniles, he must stop where he best can. 8460 8461 Most of the characters that perform in this book still live, and are 8462 prosperous and happy. Some day it may seem worth while to take up the 8463 story of the younger ones again and see what sort of men and women they 8464 turned out to be; therefore it will be wisest not to reveal any of that 8465 part of their lives at present.